<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<div class="align-None container titlepage">
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics x-large">Lady Sybil's Choice</em></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="italics large">A Tale of the Crusades</em></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="medium">BY</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><span class="large">EMILY SARAH HOLT</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><span class="small">AUTHOR OF "MISTRESS MARGERY," "SISTER ROSE," ETC.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 3em"></div>
<!-- -->
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"This Tale in ancient Chronicle,—</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>In wording old and quaint,</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>In classic language of the past,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>In letters pale and faint,—</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>This tale is told. Yet once again</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Let it be told to-day—</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>The old, old tale of woman's love,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Which lasteth on for aye."</span></div>
</div></div>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 3em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics small">NEW EDITION</em></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 3em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="medium">LONDON
<br/>JOHN F. SHAW AND CO.
<br/>48 PATERNOSTER ROW
<br/>1879</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
</div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="bold large">PREFACE.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Why, seeing times are not hidden from the
Almighty, do they that know Him, not see His days?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>From the earliest ages of the world, the needs-be
of suffering has been a mystery. Down to the
latest, it will be a mystery still. Truly, the more
we "know Him," the less mystery it is to us: for
even where we cannot see, we can trust His love.
Yet there are human analogies, which may throw
some faint light on the dark question: and one of
these will be found in the following pages. "What
I do, thou knowest not now"—sometimes because
it is morally impossible,—our finite capacity could
not hold it: but sometimes, too, because we could
not be trusted with the knowledge. In their case,
there is one thing we can do—wait. "O thou of
little faith!—</span><em class="italics">wherefore</em><span> didst thou doubt?"</span></p>
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"Oh restful, blissful ignorance!</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>'Tis blessed not to know.</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>It keeps me still in those kind arms</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Which will not let me go,</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>And hushes my soul to rest</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>On the bosom that loves me so!</span></div>
</div></div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"So I go on, not knowing,—</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>I would not, if I might.</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>I would rather walk in the dark with God</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Than walk alone in the light;</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>I would rather walk with Him by faith,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Than walk alone by sight.</span></div>
</div></div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"My heart shrinks back from trials</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Which the future may disclose;</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>Yet I never had a sorrow</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>But what the dear Lord chose:</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>So I send the coming tears back</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>With the whispered word, 'He knows!'"</span></div>
</div></div>
</div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="bold large">CONTENTS.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">CHAP.</span></p>
<ol class="upperroman simple">
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#guy-takes-the-cross">GUY TAKES THE CROSS</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#two-surprises-for-elaine">TWO SURPRISES FOR ELAINE</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#all-is-not-gold-that-glitters">ALL IS NOT GOLD THAT GLITTERS</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#a-journeyand-the-end-of-it">A JOURNEY—AND THE END OF IT</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#curious-notions">CURIOUS NOTIONS</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#the-perversity-of-people">THE PERVERSITY OF PEOPLE</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#a-little-cloud-out-of-the-sea">A LITTLE CLOUD OUT OF THE SEA</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#as-good-as-most-people">AS GOOD AS MOST PEOPLE</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#elaine-finds-more-than-she-expected">ELAINE FINDS MORE THAN SHE EXPECTED</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#preparing-for-the-struggle">PREPARING FOR THE STRUGGLE</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#the-calm-before-the-storm">THE CALM BEFORE THE STORM</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#will-she-give-him-up">WILL SHE GIVE HIM UP?</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#waiting-for-the-inevitable">WAITING FOR THE INEVITABLE</SPAN></p>
</li>
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><SPAN class="reference internal" href="#sybil-s-choice">SYBIL'S CHOICE</SPAN></p>
</li>
</ol>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="guy-takes-the-cross"><span class="bold x-large">LADY SYBIL'S CHOICE</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 3em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER I.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">GUY TAKES THE CROSS</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"But what are words, and what am I?</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>An infant crying in the night;</span></div>
<div class="line"><span>An infant crying for the light;</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>And with no language but a cry."</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>—TENNYSON.</span></div>
</div></div>
</div></div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Alix says I am a simpleton. I don't think it is
particularly pleasant. Sometimes she says I am
a perfect simpleton: and I cannot say that I like
that any better. Nor do I think that it is very civil
in one's sister to put her opinion on record in this
certainly perspicuous, but not at all complimentary
manner. Still, I have heard her say it so many
times that I might almost have come to believe it, if
she did not say so of anybody but me. But when—as
she did this morning—she says Guy is a
simpleton, that I cannot stand with any patience.
Because there is nobody like Guy in all the world.
He is the best, kindest, dearest brother that ever
a girl had or could have. And it is a shame of Alix
to say such things. I am sure of it.[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] The brothers in this family are historical persons;
the sisters fictitious.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I do not know how it is, but Alix seems vexed
that I should like Guy best of all my brothers. She
says I ought to make companions of Amaury and
Raoul, who are nearer me in age. But is that any
reason for liking people? At that rate, I ought to
love Alix least of all, because she is furthest off.
And—though I should not like her to know that I
said so—I am not at all sure that I don't.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Being like you in character, it seems to me, is a
much better reason for choosing companions, than
being near you in age. And I think Guy is much
more like me than Amaury or Raoul either. They
don't care for the same things that I do, and Guy
does. Now, how can you like a man's company
when you can never agree with him?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Alix says my tastes—and, of course, Guy's—are
very silly. I believe she thinks there is no sense in
anything but spinning and cooking and needlework.
But I think Amaury and Raoul are quite as foolish
as we are. Amaury admires everything that shines
and glitters, and he is not at all particular whether
it is gold or brass. I believe, this minute, he knows
more about samite, and damask, and velvet, than I
do. You would think the world was coming to an
end by the wail he sets up if his cap has a feather
less than he intended, or the border of his tunic is
done in green instead of yellow. Is that like being
a man? Guillot says Amaury should have been a
woman, but I think he should have stayed a baby.
Then Raoul cares for things that bang and clash.
In his eyes, everybody ought to be a soldier, and no
tale is worth hearing if it be not about a tournament
or the taking of a city.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Now I do think Guy and I have more sense.
What we love to hear is of deeds really noble,—of
men that have saved their city or their country at
the risk of their own lives; of a mother that has
sacrificed herself for her child; of a lady who was
ready to see her true knight die rather than stain his
honour. When we were little children at old
Marguerite's knee, and she used to tell us tales as a
reward when we had been good,—and who ever
knew half so many stories as dear old
Marguerite?—while Raoul always wanted a bloody battle, and
Amaury a royal pageant, and Alix what she called
something practical—which, so far as I could see,
meant something that was not interesting—and
Guillot, he said, "Something all boys, with no girls
in it"—the stories Guy and I liked were just those
which our dear old nurse best loved to tell. There
was the legend of Monseigneur Saint Gideon, who
drove the heathen Saracens out of his country with
a mere handful of foot-soldiers; and that of
Monseigneur Saint David, who, when he was but a youth,
fought with the Saracen giant, Count Goliath, who
was forty feet high—Guillot and Raoul used to like
that too; and of Monseigneur Saint Daniel, who on
a false accusation was cast to the lions, and in the
night the holy Apostle Saint Peter appeared to him,
and commanded the lions not to hurt him; and the
lions came and licked the feet of Monseigneur Saint
Peter. The story that Amaury liked best of all was
about Madame Esther, the Queen of Persia, and how
she entreated her royal lord for the lives of certain
knights that had been taken prisoners; but he
always wanted to know exactly what Madame
Esther had on, and even I thought that absurd, for
of course Marguerite had to make it up, as the
legend did not tell, and he might have done that
for himself. Raoul best loved the great legend of
the wars of Troy, and how Monseigneur Achilles
dragged Monseigneur Hector at the wheels of his
chariot: which I never did like, for I could not help
thinking of Madame the Queen, his mother, and
Madame his wife, who sat in a latticed gallery
watching, and remembering how their hearts would
bleed when they saw it. The story Guy liked best
was of two good knights of Greece, whose names
were Sir Damon and Sir Pythias, and how they so
loved that each was ready and anxious to lay down
his life for the other: and I think what I best loved
to hear was the dear legend of Madame Saint
Magdalene, and how she followed the blessed steps of
our Lord wherever He went, and was the first to
whom He deigned to appear after His resurrection.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wish, sometimes, that I had known my mother.
I never had any mother but Marguerite. If she
heard me, I know she would say, "Ha, my
Damoiselle does not well to leave out the Damoiselle
Alix." But I am sure Alix was never anything like
a mother. If she were, mothers must be queer
people.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Why don't I like Alix better? Surely the only
reason is not because she is my half-sister. Our
gracious Lord and father was twice married,—first
to the Lady Eustacie de Chabot, who was mother
of Alix, and Guillot, and Guy, and Amaury, and
Raoul: and then she died, soon after Raoul was
born; and the year afterwards Monseigneur married
my mother, and I was her only child. But that
does not hinder my loving Guy. Why should it
hinder my loving Alix?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Most certainly something does hinder it,—and
some tremendous thing hinders my loving Cousin
Hugues de la Marche. I hate him. Marguerite
says "Hush!" when I say so. But Hugues is so
intensely hateable, I am sure she need not. He is
more like Guillot than any other of us, but rougher
and more boisterous by far. I can't bear him. And
he always says he hates girls, and he can't bear me.
So why should I not hate him?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>O Mother, Mother! I wish you had stayed with me!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Somehow, I don't think of her as I do of any one
who is alive. I suppose, if she were alive, I should
call her "Fair Madame," and be afraid to move
in her presence. But being dead seems to bring
her nearer. I call her "Mother," and many a time
I say her pretty, gentle name, Clémence,—not aloud,
but in my thoughts. Would she have loved me if
she had stayed?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Does she love me, where she is with God? They
say she was so gentle and pious, I am sure she must
be in Heaven. She stayed only a very little while
with us; I was not two years old when she died.
Marguerite says she used to carry me up and down
the long gallery, looking tenderly down at my baby
face, and call me her darling, her dove, her precious
Elaine. Oh, why could I not have heard her, to
remember it, only once?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>There is no need to ask why I feel lonely and
desolate, and muse on my dead mother, as I always
do when I am miserable. I can never be anything
else, now that Guy is gone. Monseigneur, our
gracious Lord and father, gave consent a month
since that Guy should take the holy cross, and
yesterday morning he set forth with a company
on his perilous journey. Was there no one in
all the world but my Guy to fight for our Lord's
sepulchre? And does our Lord think so very much
about it, that He does not care though a maiden's
heart be broken and her life desolate, if she give
up her best beloved to defend it?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well, I suppose it is wrong to say that. The
good God is always good, of course. And I suppose
it is right that Guy should put the sepulchre before
me. He is the true knight, to sacrifice himself to
duty; and I am not the noble-hearted damsel, if
I wish he had done otherwise. And I suppose the
great tears that fell on that red cross while I was
broidering it, were displeasing to the good God.
He ought to have the best. Oh yes! I see that,
quite clearly. And yet I wonder why He wanted
my best, when He has all the saints and angels
round Him, to do Him homage. And I had only
Guy. I cannot understand it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh dear! I do get so puzzled, sometimes. I
think this is a very perplexing world to live in.
And it is of no use to say a word to Alix, because
she only calls me a simpleton, and that does not
explain anything: and Marguerite says, "Hush!
My Damoiselle would not speak against the good God?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And neither of them helps me a bit. They do
not see that I never mean to speak against the
good God. I only want to understand. They do
not feel the same sort of want, I suppose, and so
they think it wicked in me to feel it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Does my mother understand it all? Must one
die, to understand? And if so, why?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy would let me ask him such questions. I
do not know that he saw the answer any better
than I did, but at least we could agree in feeling
them, and could try to puzzle the way out. But
Alix appears not even to see what I mean. And
it is disheartening, when one takes the trouble to
brace up one's courage to ask such questions from
somebody above one, of whom one feels ever so
little afraid, only to be told in reply what the same
person had told one a hundred times before—that
one is a simpleton.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wish somebody would listen to me. If I could
have seen a saint,—some one who lived in perpetual
communion with our Lord, and knew all things!
But do saints know all things? If so, why could
not I be a saint myself, and then I should know too?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well, I have no doubt of the answer to that
question. For if I were a saint, I must first be a
nun; and that would mean to go away from home,
and never, never see Guy any more.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh no! that would not do. So it is plain I can
never be a saint.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>When I come to think about it, I doubt if there
ever were a saint in our family. Of course we are
one of the oldest families in Poitou, and indeed I
might say, in France; for Count Hugues I. lived
about nine hundred years after our Lord, and that
is nearly as far back as Charlemagne. And
Monseigneur has no one above him but our gracious
Lord the Count of Poitou, who is in his turn a
vassal of our suzerain, the King of England, and
he pays homage to the King of France.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I never did like that, and I don't now. I cannot
see why our King should pay homage to the King
of France for his dominions on this side of the
sea.[#] The French say there were Kings in France before
there ever were in England. Well, that may be
so: but I am sure it was not long before, and our
King is every bit as good as the King of France.
When Raoul wants to tease me, he says I am a
Frenchwoman. And I won't be called a Frenchwoman.
I am not a subject of King Louis. I am
a Poitevine, and a subject of the Lord Henry, King
of England and Count of Poitou, to begin with: and
under him, of his son the Lord Richard,[#] who is
now our young Count; and beneath him again, of
Monseigneur, my own father, who has as much
power in his own territory as the King himself.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] This homage, exacted by the Kings of France, was always a sore
subject with the Kings of England, who took every opportunity of
evading that personal payment of it which it was the anxiety of the
French monarchs to secure.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] Cœur-de-Lion.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>It is true, Monseigneur's territory is not very
large. But Father Eudes told us one day, when
he was giving us our Latin lessons, that the great
Emperor of Rome, Monseigneur Julius Cæsar, who
was such a wonderful man and a great magician,
used to say that he would rather be the first in a
village than the second in imperial Rome itself.
And that is just what I feel. I would rather be the
Damoiselle Elaine, daughter of Monseigneur the
Count of Lusignan, than I would be the niece or
cousin of the Queen of France. I do like to be at
the top of everything. And I would rather be at
the top of a little thing than at the bottom of a
big one.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Marguerite smiles and shakes her head when I
say so to her. She says it is pleasanter down at
the bottom. It makes me laugh to hear her. It
is natural enough that she should think so, as she
is only a villein, and of course she is at the bottom.
And it is very well if she likes it. I could never
bear it. But then I am noble, and it could not be
expected that I should do so.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Though we never had a saint in our House, yet,
as every one knows, we sprang from a supernatural
source. The root of the House of Lusignan was
the Fairy Mélusine, who was the loveliest creature
imaginable, but half woman and half serpent. I do
not know when she lived, but it must have been
ages ago; and she built the Castle of Lusignan by
enchantment. Sometimes, on a still summer
evening, any one who is out alone will catch a glimpse
of her, bathing in the fountain which stands in the
pleasance.[#] I would not cross the pleasance after
dark on a summer evening—no, not to be made a
queen. I should be frightened to death of seeing
the Lady Mélusine. For when any one of our line
is about to die, she is sure to appear, so I should
think I was going to die if I saw her. She comes,
too, when any great calamity is threatening France.
Perhaps I should not be quite sure to die, but I
would rather not risk it. I never did see her, the
saints be thanked; and Marguerite says she never
did. I think she cannot have appeared for a long
time. About forty years ago, before the death of
the Lady Poncette, Countess of Angoulême, who
was a daughter of our House, Arlette, the mother
of our varlet Robert, thought she saw the Lady
Mélusine; but it was nearly dark, and there were
trees between them, and Arlette is near-sighted, so
it was not possible to be sure. But she says her
mother-in-law's niece's grand-aunt really did see
her, and no mistake at all about it. She was
bathing in the fountain, and she splashed her long
tail about till the maiden almost lost her wits from
the fright. And the very next year, Count Hugues
the Good was murdered by the Duke of Guienne's
people. Which shows plainly that there are such
things as ghosts.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Pleasure-grounds.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The night before Guy went away—can it be two
evenings since,—only two?—we crept into the long
gallery, as we two always do when we want a quiet
talk, and sat down in that window from which you
get the lovely view of the church spire through the
trees, across the river. That is always our favourite
window. Guy was trying to comfort me, and I am
rather afraid I was crying. And he said, drawing me
up to him, and kissing me,—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, my little Elaine, there have been tears
enough for once. I am not going to forget thee,
any more than thou meanest to forget me. When
I have fought the Saracens, and taken Saladin
captive, and brought him in chains to Jerusalem,
and the King has made me a Count, and given me
a beautiful lady for my wife, and everybody is
talking about me,"—of course I knew that was only
Guy's fun; he did not really expect all that,—"then,"
he went on, "I will send home for Amaury
and my little pet, and you shall come to me in the
Holy Land. Monseigneur promised me that, thou
knowest. He said it would be an excellent thing
for thee; because thou wouldst not only have all
thy sins forgiven at the Holy Sepulchre, but very
likely I should have the chance of getting a good
husband for thee. And I have talked well to
Amaury about taking care of thee on the journey;
and Marguerite must attend thee. So look forward
to that, Lynette, and dry those red eyes."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"They will be red till thou comest back, Guy!"
said I, with another burst of tears.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am sure I hope not!" he answered, laughing.
"They will be very ugly if they are; and then how
am I to get thee a husband?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I don't care about one, I thank thee," said I
"So that does not signify."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, that is because thou art fourteen," said
Guy; "wait till thou art four-and-twenty."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>There, now! if I could have been vexed with my
own dear Guy, and just when he was going away for
ever—at least it looks very like for ever—but of
course I could not. But why will men—even the
very best of them—always fancy that a girl cares
more for a husband than anything else in this
world? However, I let it pass. How could I
quarrel with Guy?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Guy," I said, "dost thou care very much about
having a beautiful lady for thy wife?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy takes the Cross.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, certainly!" replied Guy, pursing up his lips,
and pretending to be grave.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I did not like the idea one bit. I felt more inclined
to cry till Guy came back than ever.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What will she be like, Guy?" I asked, trying
not to show it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"She will be the loveliest creature in all the world,"
said Guy, "with eyes as black as sloes, and hair like
a raven's plumage; and so rich that whenever she
puts her hand in her pocket thou wilt hear the
besants go chink, chink against each other."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wilt thou love her, Guy?" I said, gulping down
my thoughts.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"To distraction!" replied Guy, casting up his eyes.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well, I knew all the while it was nonsense, but I
did feel so miserable I could not tell what to do. I
know Raoul and Guillot have a notion that they are
only fulfilling the ends of their being by teasing their
sisters; but it was something so very new for Guy.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But thou wilt not give over loving </span><em class="italics">me</em><span>, Guy?"
I wailed, and I am sure there were tears in my voice
as well as my eyes.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My dear, foolish little Lynette!" said Guy, half
laughing, and smoothing my hair; "dost thou not
know me any better than that? Why, I shall be
afraid of talking nonsense, or sense either, if thou
must needs take it to heart in that style."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I felt rather comforted, but I did not go on with
that. There was something else that I wanted to
ask Guy, and it was my last opportunity.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Guy," I said softly, after a moment's pause,
"canst thou remember my mother?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh yes, darling," he said. "I was eleven years
old when she died."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Didst thou love her?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Very dearly," he answered—quite grave now.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Am I like her, Guy?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy looked down on me, and smiled.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes—and no," he said. "The Lady Clémence
had lighter hair than thou; and her smile was very
sweet. Thine eyes are darker, too, and brighter—there
is something of the falcon in them: she had
the eyes of the dove. Yet there is a likeness, though
it is not easy to tell thee what."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Did Monseigneur love her very much, Guy?" I said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"More than he ever loved any other, I think,"
answered Guy. "He was married to my mother
when both were little children, as thou knowest is
generally the case: but he married thine for love.
And—I don't know, but I always fancy that is the
reason why he has ever been unwilling to have us
affianced in infancy. When people are married as
babies, and when they grow up they find that they
do not like each other, it must be very disagreeable,
I should think."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I should think it was just horrible, Guy," said I.
"But Alix and Guillot were affianced as babies."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"So they were," said he. "But I doubt if Guillot
ever cared about it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, is Umberge one to care about?" I replied.
"There is nothing in her of any sort. Was Alix
very sorry, Guy, when her betrothed died? How
old was she?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"About ten years old," he said. "Oh no—not
she. I do not think she had seen him five times."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well," I said, "I am very glad that I was not
treated in that way."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>So we went on talking. I hardly know what we
talked about, or rather what we did not; for it was
first one thing and then another, as our thoughts led
that way. I asked Guy if he thought that our mothers
knew what befel us here on earth, and he said he
supposed they must, for how else could the saints
and angels hear us?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I saw old Marguerite at one end of the gallery,
and I am sure she was come to bid me go to bed:
but as soon as she caught sight of Guy and me
talking in the window, she made believe to be
about something else, and slipped away again.
She knew I wanted to have my talk out with Guy.
The last talk I may ever have with him for years!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And now it is all over, and Guy is gone.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wonder how he will get on! Will he do some
grand, gallant deed, and be sent for to the Court of
the Holy Land, and made a Count or a Duke?—and
have all sorts of jewels and riches given him?
Perhaps the Queen will put a chaplet of flowers on
his head, and all the Princesses will dance with him,
and he will be quite a hero. But about that beautiful
lady,—I don't feel at all comfortable about her!
I cannot tell whether I should love her or hate her.
If she did not almost worship Guy, I am sure I
should hate her.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And then there is another side to the picture,
which I do not like to look at in the least. Instead
of all this, Guy may get taken prisoner, and may
languish out twenty years in some Saracen
dungeon—perhaps, all his life!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh dear, dear! I don't know what to do! And
the worst of it is, that nothing I can do will make
any difference.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Why does the good God let there be any Saracens?
Marguerite says—and so does Father Eudes,
so it must be true—that God can do everything, and
that He wants everybody to be a good Christian.
Then why does He not make us all good Christians?
That is what I want to know. Oh, I cannot, cannot
make it out!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But then they all say, "Hush, hush!" and "Fie,
Damoiselle!" as if I had said something very
wicked and shocking. They say the good God
will be very angry. Why is the good God angry
when we want to know?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wonder why men and women were ever made
at all. I wonder why </span><em class="italics">I</em><span> was made. Did the good
God want me for something, that He took the pains
to make me? Oh, can nobody tell me why the
good God wanted me?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>He must be good, for He made all so beautiful.
And He might have made things ugly. But then,
sometimes, He lets such dreadful things happen.
Are there not earthquakes and thunderstorms?
And why does He let nice people die? Could
not—well, I suppose that is wicked. No, it isn't!
I may as well say it as think it.—Would it not have
done as well if Alix had died, and my mother had
lived? It would have been so much nicer! And
what difference would it have made in Heaven—I
hope Alix would have gone there—where they have
all the angels, and all the saints? Surely they could
have spared my mother—better than I can.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well, I suppose—as Alix says when she wants
one to be quiet—"it is no use talking." Things
are so, and I cannot change them. And all my
tears will not give me Guy back. I must try to
think of the neuvaine[#] which he has promised to
offer for me at the Holy Sepulchre, and hope that
he won't be taken prisoner, and that he will be made
a Count, and—well, and try to reconcile myself to
that beautiful lady who is to have Guy instead of
me. Oh dear me!</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Nine days' masses.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Now, there is another thing that puzzles me.
(Every thing puzzles me in this world. I wish there
had been another to which I could have gone, where
things would not have puzzled me.) If God be
everywhere—as Father Eudes says—why should
prayers offered at the Holy Sepulchre be of more
value than prayers offered in my bedchamber? I
cannot see any reason, unless it were that God[#] loves
the Holy Land so very much, because He lived and
died there, that He is oftener there than anywhere
else, and so there is a better chance of getting Him
to hear. But how then can He be everywhere?</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] In using this one of the Divine Names,
a mediæval Romanist
almost always meant to indicate the
Second Person of the Trinity only.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Why will people—wise people, I mean—not try
to answer such questions? Marguerite only says,
"Hush, then, my Damoiselle!" Alix says, "Oh,
do be quiet! When will you give over being so
silly?" And Monseigneur pats me on the head,
and answers, "Why should my cabbage trouble her
pretty little head? Those are matters for doctors
of the schools, little one. Go thou and call the
minstrels, or bind some smart ribbons in thine hair;
that is more fit for such maidens as thou."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Do </span><em class="italics">they</em><span> never want to know? And why should
the answers be only fit for learned men, if the
questions keep coming and worrying me? If I
could once know, I should give over wanting to
know. But how can I give over till I do?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Either the world has got pulled into a knot, or
else I have. And so far from being able to undo
me, nobody seems to see that I am on a knot at all.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If you please, Damoiselle, the Damoiselle Alix
wishes to know where your Nobleness put the maccaroons."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh dear, Héloïse! I forgot to make them. Can
she not do without them?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If you please, Damoiselle, your noble sister says
that the Lady Umberge will be here for the spice
this afternoon, and your Excellence is aware that she
likes maccaroons."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Yes, I am—better than I like her. I never did
see anybody eat so many at once as she does.
She will do for once with cheesecakes. I would
not mind staying up all night to make maccaroons
for Guy, but I am sure cheesecakes are good enough
for Umberge. And Alix does make good
cheese-cakes—I will give her that scrap of praise.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, Héloïse—I don't know. I really think
we should do. But I suppose—is there time to
make them now?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If you please, Damoiselle, it is three o'clock by
the sundial."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then it is too late."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And I thought, but of course I did not say to
Héloïse,—How Alix will scold! I heard her step
on the stairs, and I fairly ran. But I did not lose
my lecture.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Elaine!" cried Alix's shrill voice, "where are you?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Alix might be a perfect stranger, for the way in
which she always calls me </span><em class="italics">you</em><span>. I came out. I
knew it was utterly useless to try to hide.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Where have you put those new maccaroons?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"They are not made, Alix," I said, trying to look
as if I did not care.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Not made? Saint Martin of Tours help us!
What can you have been doing?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was silent.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I say, what were you doing?" demanded Alix,
with a stamp of her foot.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Never mind. I forgot the maccaroons."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>If I had been speaking to any one but Alix, I
should have added that I was sorry. But she is
always so angry that it seems to dry up any regret
on my part.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"You naughty girl!" Alix blazed out. "You
very, very naughty girl! There is no possibility of
relying on you for one instant. You go dreaming
away, and forget everything one tells you. You
are silly, </span><em class="italics">silly</em><span>!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The tone that Alix put into that last word! It
was enough to provoke all the saints in the calendar.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"There will be plenty without them," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Hold your tongue, and don't give me any
impudence!" retorted Alix.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I thought I might have said the same. If Alix
would speak more kindly, I am sure I should not
get so vexed. I can't imagine what she would say
if I were to do something really wicked, for she
exhausts her whole vocabulary on my gathering the
wrong flowers, or forgetting to make cakes.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Don't be cross, Alix," I said, trying to keep the
peace. "I really did forget them."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh dear, yes, I never doubted it!" answered Alix,
in that way of hers which always tries my patience.
"Life is sacred to the memory of Guy, but my
trouble and Umberge's likings are of no consequence
at all! And it does not matter that the Baron de
Montbeillard and his lady will be here, and that we
shall have a dish too little on the table. Not in the
least!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, really, Alix, I don't think it does much
matter," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Of course not. And the Lady de Montbeillard
will not go home and tell everybody what a bad
housekeeper I am, and how little I care to have
things nice for my guests—Oh dear, no!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If you treat her kindly, I should think her very
ungrateful if she did," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Alix flounced away with—"I wish you were gone
after Guy!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And so did I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But at night, just before I dropped asleep, a new
idea came to me—an idea that never occurred to
me before.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Do I try Alix as much as she tries me?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh dear! I hope not. It cannot be. I don't
think it is possible. Is it?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wish I had not forgotten those cakes. Alix
did seem so put out. And I suppose it was rather
annoying—perhaps.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I did not like her saying that I was not to be
trusted. I don't think that was fair. And I cannot
bear injustice. Still, I did forget the cakes. And if
she had trusted me, it was only reasonable that she
should feel disappointed. But she did not need to
have been so angry, and have said such disagreeable
things. Well, I suppose I was angry too; but I
show my anger in a different way from Alix. I do
not know which of us was more wrong. I think
it was Alix. Yes, I am sure it was. She treats
me abominably. It is enough to make anybody angry.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Those limes seem to come up and look reproachfully
at me, when I say that. I was not at all well—it
might be three years ago: rather feverish, and
very cross. And two travelling pedlars came to the
Castle gate. One sold rare and costly fruits, and
the other silken stuffs. Now I know that Alix had
been saving up her money for a gold-coloured
ribbon, for which she had a great fancy; and there was
a lovely one in that pedlar's stock—in fact, I have
never since seen one quite so pretty. Alix had just
enough to buy it. She could not get any more,
because the treasurer was away with Monseigneur
at the hawking. But she saw my wistful glances
at the limes in the other pedlar's panniers, and
she bought some for me. They were delicious:
but Alix went without her gold-coloured ribbon.
She had no other chance of it, for the pedlar was
on his way to the great Whitsuntide fair at Poictiers,
and he would not stay even one night.[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] At the period of this story,
shops were nearly unknown except in
the largest towns. Country families—noble,
gentle, or peasant—had
to rely on laying in a stock of goods
at the great fairs, held at Easter,
Whitsuntide, Michaelmas, and Christmas;
and for anything wanted
between those periods,
recourse was had to travelling pedlars, who also
served as carriers and postmen when occasion demanded it.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I wonder if it be possible that Alix really loves
me,—just one little bit! And I wonder if we could
give over rasping one another as we do. It would
be very difficult.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But if I ever do follow Guy, I will bring back,
from Byzantium or Damascus, something beautiful
for Alix, to make up for that gold ribbon. It was
good of her. And I do wish I had remembered
those maccaroons!</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="two-surprises-for-elaine"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER II.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">TWO SURPRISES FOR ELAINE</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"I feel within me</span></div>
<div class="line"><span>A mind above all earthly dignities,</span></div>
<div class="line"><span>A still and quiet conscience."</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>—SHAKSPERE.</span></div>
</div></div>
</div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I should like to know, if I could find out, what it
is that makes Alix have such a fancy for Lady
Isabeau de Montbeillard. I think she is just
abominable. She finishes off every sentence with
a little crackling laugh, which it drives me wild to
hear. It makes no difference what it is about.
Whether it be, "Dear Damoiselle, how kind you
are!" or "Do you not think my lord looks but
poorly?" they all end up with "Ha, ha, ha!" Sometimes
I feel as though I could shake her like
Lovel does the rats.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>If Lady Isabeau were like Alix in her ways, I
would understand it better; but they are totally
unlike, and yet they seem to have a fancy for each
other.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>As for the Baron, I don't care a bit about him
any way. He is like Umberge in that respect—there
is nothing in him either to like or dislike.
And if there can be still less of anything than in
him, I think it is in his brother, Messire Raymond,
who sits with his mouth a little open, staring at one
as if one were a curiosity in a show.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Alix told me this morning that I was too censorious.
I am afraid that last sentence looks rather
like it. Perhaps I had better stop.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The Baron and his lady went with us to the
hawking, and so did Messire Raymond; but he
never caught so much as a sparrow. Then, after
we came back, I had to try on my new dress, which
Marguerite had just finished. It really is a beauty.
The under-tunic is of crimson velvet, the super-tunic
of blue samite embroidered in silver; the mantle of
reddish tawny, with a rich border of gold. I shall
wear my blue kerchief with it, which Monseigneur
gave me last New Year's Day, and my golden girdle
studded with sapphires. The sleeves are the
narrowest I have yet had, for the Lady de
Montbeillard told Alix that last time she was at the
Court, the sleeves were much tighter at the wrist than
they used to be, and she thinks, in another twenty
years or so, the pocketing sleeve[#] may be quite out
of fashion. It would be odd if sleeves were to be
made the same width all the way down. But the
Lady de Montbeillard saw Queen Marguerite[#] when
she was at Poictiers, and she says that the Queen
wore a tunic of the most beautiful pale green, and
her sleeves were the closest worn by any lady there.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] One of the most uncomely and inconvenient vagaries of fashion.
The sleeve was moderately tight from shoulder to elbow, and just
below the elbow it went off in a wide pendant sweep, reaching
almost to the knee. The pendant part was used as a pocket.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] Daughter of Louis VII., King of France, and Constança of Castilla:
wife of Henry, eldest son of Henry II. of England. Her husband was
crowned during his father's life, and by our mediæval chroniclers is
always styled Henry the Third.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I wish I were a queen. It is not because I think
it would be grand, but because queens and
princesses wear their coronets over their kerchiefs
instead of under. And it is such a piece of business
to fasten one's kerchief every morning with the
coronet underneath. Marguerite has less trouble
than I have with it, as she has nothing to fasten
but the kerchief. And if it is not done to perfection
I am sure to hear of it from Alix.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>When Marguerite was braiding my hair this
morning, I asked her if she knew why she was
made. She was ready enough with her answer.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"To serve you, Damoiselle, without doubt."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And why was I made, dost thou think, Marguerite?
To be served by thee—or to serve some one else?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Of course, while the Damoiselle is young and
at home, she will serve Monseigneur. Then, when
the cavalier comes who pleases Monseigneur and
the good God, he will serve the Damoiselle. And
afterwards,—it is the duty of a good wife to serve
her lord. And of course, all, nobles and villeins,
must serve the good God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, thou hast settled it easier than I could do
it," said I. "But, Margot, dost thou never become
tired of all this serving?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Not now, Damoiselle."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What dost thou mean by that?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, there was a time," said Marguerite, and
I thought a blush burned on her dear old face,
"when I was a young, silly maiden, and very, very
foolish, Damoiselle."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou think all maidens silly, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Very few wise, Damoiselle. My foolish head
was full of envious thoughts, I know that—vain
wishes that I had been born a noble lady, instead
of a villein maiden. I thought scorn to serve, and
would fain have been born to rule."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"How very funny!" said I. "I never knew
villeins had any notions of that sort. I thought
they were quite content."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is the noble Damoiselle always quite content?
Pardon me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, no," said I. "But then, Margot, I am
noble, and nobles may rightfully aspire. Villeins
ought to be satisfied with the lot which the good
God has marked out for them, and with the honour
of serving a noble House."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha, Damoiselle! The Damoiselle has used a
deep, strong word. Satisfy! I believe nothing will
satisfy any living heart of man or woman,—except
that one thing."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What one thing?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am an ignorant villein, my Damoiselle. I do
not know the holy Latin tongue, as ladies do. But
now and then Father Eudes will render some words
of the blessed Evangel into French in his sermon.
And he did so that day—when I was satisfied."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What was it that satisfied thee, then, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"They were words, Father Eudes said, of the
good God Himself, when He walked on middle
earth among us men. 'Come unto Me,' He said,
'all ye that labour and are heavy laden, and I will
give you rest.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But I do not understand, Marguerite. How did
those words satisfy thee?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The words did not, Damoiselle. But the thing
did. I just took the blessed Lord at His word, and
went to Him, and, thanks be to His holy Name,
He gave me rest."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What dost thou mean, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Will the dear Damoiselle not come and try?
She will want rest, some day."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Had I not better wait till I am tired?" said I,
laughingly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, yes! we never want rest till we are tired.—But
not wait to come to the merciful Lord. Oh no, no!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nay, I cannot comprehend thee, Margot."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, my Damoiselle. She is not likely to know
how to come until she wants to do it. When she
does want it, the good God will hear the Damoiselle,
for He heard her servant."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Didst thou entreat the intercession of Saint
Marguerite?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, no. I am but an ignorant old woman. The
dear Lord said, 'Come unto </span><em class="italics">Me</em><span>.' And I thought,
perhaps, He meant it. So I just went."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But how couldst thou, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If it please my Damoiselle, I did it. And if He
had been angry, I suppose He would not have heard me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But how dost thou know He did hear thee?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"When the Damoiselle entreats Monseigneur to
give her a silver mark, and he opens his purse and
gives it, is it possible for her to doubt that he has
heard her? The good God must have heard me,
because He gave me rest."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not understand, Margot, what thou meanest
by rest. And I want to know all about it. Have
things given over puzzling thee? Is there some
light come upon them?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It seems to me, Damoiselle, if I be not too bold
in speaking my poor thoughts"——</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Go on," said I. "I want to know them."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then, my Damoiselle, it seems to me that there
are two great lights in which we may see every
thing in this world. The first is a fierce light, like the
sun. But it blinds and dazzles us. The holy angels
perchance can bear it, for it streams from the Throne
of God, and they stand before that Throne. But
we cannot. Our mortal eyes must be hidden in
that dread and unapproachable light. And if I
mistake not, it is by this light that the Damoiselle
has hitherto tried to see things, and no wonder that
her eyes are dazzled. But the other light soothes
and enlightens. It is soft and clear, like the
moonlight, and it streams from the Cross of Calvary.
There the good God paid down, in the red gold
of His own blood, the price of our redemption. It
must have been because He thought it worth while.
And if He paid such a price for a poor villein
woman like me, He must have wanted me. The
Damoiselle would not cast a pearl into the Vienne
for which she had paid a thousand crowns. And
if He cared enough about me to give His life for
me, then He must care enough to be concerned
about my welfare in this lower world. The
Damoiselle would not refuse a cup of water to him to
whom she was willing to give a precious gem.
Herein lies rest. What the good God, who thus
loves me, wills for me, I will for myself also."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But, Marguerite, it might be something that
would break thine heart."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Would the blessed Lord not know that? But
I do not think He breaks hearts that are willing
to be His. He melts them. It is the hearts that
harden themselves like a rock which have to be
broken."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But thou wouldst not like something which hurt thee?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Not enjoy it—no, no. Did the Damoiselle
enjoy the verdigris plaster which the apothecary put
on her when she was ill three years ago? Yet she
did not think him her enemy, but her friend. Ah,
the good God has His medicine-chest. And it holds
smarting plasters and bitter drugs. But they are
better than to be ill, Damoiselle."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Marguerite, I had no idea thou wert such a philosopher."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, the noble Damoiselle is pleased to laugh
at her servant, who does not know what that hard
word means. No, there is nothing old Marguerite
knows, only how to come to the blessed Lord and
ask Him for rest. </span><em class="italics">He</em><span> gave the rest. And He knew
how to do it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wonder if old Marguerite is not the truest
philosopher of us all. It is evident that things do
not puzzle her, just because she lets them alone,
and leaves them with God. Still, that is not
knowing. And I want to know.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh, I wish I could tell if it is wicked to want to
know!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wonder if the truth be that there are things
which we cannot know:—things which the good God
does not tell us, not because He wishes us to be
ignorant, but because He could not possibly make
us comprehend them. But then why did He not
make us wiser?—or why does He let questions
perplex us to which we can find no answer?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I think it must be that He does not wish us to
find the answer. And why? I will see what idea
Marguerite has about that. She seems to get hold
of wise notions in some unintelligible way, for of
course she is only a villein, and cannot have as
much sense as a noble.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>There was that tiresome Messire Raymond in the
hall when I went down. He is noble enough, for his
mother's mother was a Princess of the Carlovingian[#]
blood: but I am sure he has no more sense than he
needs. The way in which he says "Ah!" when I tell
him anything, just exasperates me. The Baron, his
brother, is a shade better, though he will never wear
a laurel crown.[#] Still, he does not say "Ah!"</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] A descendant of Charlemagne.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] The prize of intellect.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I don't like younger brothers. In fact, I don't
think I like men of any sort. Except Guy, of
course—and Monseigneur. But then other men are not
like them. Guillot, and Amaury, and Raoul rank
with the other men.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wonder if women are very much better. I don't
think they are, if I am to look upon Alix and the
Lady de Montbeillard as samples.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh dear, I wonder why I hate people so! It must
be because they are hateful. Does anybody think
</span><em class="italics">me</em><span> hateful? How queer it would be, if they did!</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I really do feel, to-night, as if I did not know
whether I was standing on my feet or on my head.
I cannot realise it one bit. Alix going to be
married! Alix going away from the Castle! And
I—I—to be the only mistress there!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Monseigneur called me down into the hall, as I
stood picking the dead leaves from my rose-bushes
for a pot-pourri. There was no one in the hall but
himself. Well, of course there were a quantity of
servitors and retainers, but they never count for
anything. I mean, there was nobody that is
anybody. He bade me come up to him, and he drew
me close, kissed me on the forehead, and stroked
down my hair.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What will my cabbage say to what I have to
tell her?" said he.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is it something pleasant, Monseigneur?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, there thou posest me," he answered, "Yes,—in
one light. No,—in another. And in which of
the two lights thou wilt see it, I do not yet know."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I looked up into his face and waited.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou like Messire Raymond de Montbeillard?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, Monseigneur," I answered.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No? Ha! then perchance thou wilt not like
my news."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Messire Raymond has something to do with it?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Every thing."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well," said I, I am afraid rather saucily, "so
long as he does not want to marry me, I do not
much care what he does."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Monseigneur pinched my ear, kissed me, and
seemed extremely amused.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thee? No, no! Not just yet, my little
cabbage. Not just yet! But suppose he wanted to
marry Alix?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does he want to marry Alix?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"He does."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And under your good leave, Monseigneur?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, yes. I see no good reason to the contrary,
my little cat. He is a brave knight, and has a fine
castle, and is a real Carlovingian."[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Throughout France in the Middle Ages, the Carlovingian blood
was rated at an extravagant value.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"He is a donkey!" said I. "Real, too."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha, hush, then!" replied Monseigneur, yet
laughing, and patting my cheek. "Well, well—perhaps
not overburdened with brains—how sharp
thou art, child, to be sure! (No want of brains in
that direction.) But a good, worthy man, my
cabbage, and a stalwart knight."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And when is it to be, Monseigneur?" I asked.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"In a hurry to see the fine dresses?" demanded
my gracious Lord, and laughed again. "Nay, I
think not till after Christmas. Time enough then.
</span><em class="italics">I</em><span> am in no hurry to lose my housekeeper. Canst
thou keep house, my rabbit?—ha, ha! Will there
be anything for dinner? Ha, ha, ha, ha!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was half frightened, and yet half delighted. Of
course, I thought, if Alix goes away, Umberge will
come and reign here. Nobody is likely to think me
old enough or good enough.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Under your Nobility's good leave, I will see to
that," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Monseigneur answered by a peal of laughter.
"Ha, ha, ha! Showing her talons, is she? Wants
to rule, my cabbage—does she? A true woman, on
my troth! Ha, ha, ha!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If it please you, Monseigneur, why should you
come short of dinner because I see about it?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>My gracious Lord laughed more than ever.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No reason at all, my little rabbit!—no reason at
all! Try thy hand, by all means—by all means! So
Umberge does not need to come? Ha, ha, ha, ha!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Certainly not for me," said I, rather piqued.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Seriously, my little cat," said he, and his face
grew grave. "Wouldst thou rather Umberge did
not come? Art thou not friends with her?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, as to friends, so-so, là-là,"[#] said I. "But I
think I should get along quite as well without her."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Middling.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"But wouldst thou not weary for a woman's company?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I never weary for any company but Guy's," I
answered; and I think the tears came into my eyes.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is it still Guy?" said he, smiling, but very kindly
now. "Always Guy? Well, well! When the time
comes—I promised the boy thou shouldst go out to
him. We must wait till he writes to say he is ready
to receive thee. So Guy stands first, does he?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I nodded, for my heart was too full to speak.
He patted my head again, and let me go. But I
thought he looked a little troubled; and I could not
tell why.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>When I came to undress, the same evening, I
asked Marguerite if she had heard the news.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The Damoiselle Alix was so gracious as to inform
me," said she.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou like it, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha, my Damoiselle! What does it matter what
a villein old woman likes?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It matters to me, or I should not have asked
thee," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I trust it will be for the noble Damoiselle's
welfare," said she; and I could get her to say no more.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, Margot, tell me something else," said I.
"Why does the good God not make all things clear
to everybody? What sayest thou?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"He has not told me why, Damoiselle. Perhaps,
to teach my Damoiselle to trust Him. There could
be no trust if we always knew."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But is not knowing better than trusting?" I replied.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is it?" responded Marguerite. "Does Monseigneur
always take my Damoiselle into his secrets, and
never require her to trust him? God is the great
King of all the world. Kings always have secret
matters. Surely the King of kings must have His
state secrets too."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>This seemed putting it on a new footing. I sat
and considered the matter, while Marguerite took off
my dove cote[#] and unbound my hair.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] The rich network which confined the hair;
often of gold and precious stones.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Still, I don't see why we may not know
everything," I said at last.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does my Damoiselle remember what stood in
the midst of the beautiful Garden of God, wherein
Adam and Eva were put to dwell?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The tree of knowledge," said I. "True; but
that does not help me to the why. Why might
Adam and Eva not eat it?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Will my Damoiselle pardon me? I think it
does help to the why; but not to the why of the
why—which is what she always wants to see. Why
Adam and Eva might not eat it, I suppose, was
because the good God forbade it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But why, Marguerite?—why?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! I am not the good God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not see it one bit," said I. "Surely
knowledge is a good thing."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Knowledge of good, ay,—which is knowledge
of God. The good Lord never forbids us that. He
commands it. But let me entreat my Damoiselle to
remember, that this was the tree of knowledge of
good </span><em class="italics">and evil</em><span>. That we should know evil cannot
be good."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not understand why the good God ever let
Satan be at all," said I. "And I do not see how
Satan came to be Satan, to begin with."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The blessed Lord knows all about it," said
Marguerite. "When my Damoiselle was a little child,
I am sure she did not understand why we gave her
bitter medicines. But the apothecary knew. Can
my Damoiselle not leave all her questions with the
good Lord?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I want them answered, Margot!" I cried
impatiently. "If I knew that I should understand when
I am dead, I would not so much mind waiting.
But I don't know any thing. And I don't like it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, I do not know even that much," she
replied. "It may be so. I cannot tell. But the
good Lord knows—and He loves me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"How knowest thou that, Marguerite?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"People don't die for a man, Damoiselle, unless
they love him very much indeed."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But how dost thou know that it was for thee?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It was for sinners: and I am one."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But not for all sinners, Margot. A great many
sinners will go to perdition, Father Eudes says.
How canst thou tell if thou art one of them or not?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, that did perplex me at first. But one day
Father Eudes read out of the holy Gospel that all
who believed in our Lord should have life eternal:
so that settled it. The sinners that are lost must be
those who do not believe in our Lord."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Marguerite! don't we all believe in Him?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Let the Damoiselle forgive me if I speak
foolishly. But there are two brothers among the
varlets in the hall—Philippe and Robert. Now, I
quite believe that they both exist. I know a good
deal about them. I know their father and mother,
Pierrot and Arlette: and I know that Philippe has
a large nose and black hair, and he is fond of
porpoise; while Robert has brown hair and limps a
little, and he likes quinces. Yet, if I wanted to send
a crown to my niece Perette, I should feel quite
satisfied that Robert would carry it straight to her,
while I should not dare to give it to Philippe, lest
he should go to the next cabaret and spend it in
wine. Now, don't I believe in Robert in a very
different way from that in which I believe in
Philippe?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, thou meanest that Robert may be trusted,
but Philippe cannot be," said I. "But what has it
to do with the matter?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Let the Damoiselle think a moment. Does she
simply believe that the good God is, or does she
trust Him?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Trust Him!—with what?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"With yourself, my Damoiselle."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"With myself!" I exclaimed. "Nay, Margot,
what dost thou mean now?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"How does the Damoiselle trust Monseigneur?
Has she any care lest he should fail to provide her
with food and clothing suitable to her rank? Does
it not seem to her a matter of course that so long as
he lives he will always love her, and care for her,
and never forget nor neglect her? Has she ever
lain awake at night fretting over the idea that
Monseigneur might give over providing for her or
being concerned about her welfare?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What a ridiculous notion!" I cried. "Why,
Margot, I simply could not do it. He is my father."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And what does my Damoiselle read in the holy
Psalter? Is it not 'Like as a father pitieth his
children, even so the Lord pitieth them that fear
Him?' Is He not Our Father?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes, of course we expect the good God to take
care of us," I replied. "But then, Margot, it is a
different thing. And thou knowest He does not
always take care of us in that way. He lets all sorts
of things happen to hurt and grieve us."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then, when my Damoiselle is ill, and Monseigneur
sends off in hot haste for Messire Denys to
come and bleed her in the foot, he is </span><em class="italics">not</em><span> taking care
of her? It hurts her, I think."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, that has to be, Margot. As thou saidst, it
is better than being ill."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And—let my Damoiselle bear with her servant—is
there no 'must be' with the good God?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But I don't see why, Margot. He could make
us well all in a minute. Monseigneur cannot."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yet suppose it is better that my Damoiselle
should not be made well all in a minute, but should
learn by suffering to be patient in sickness, and
thankful for her usual good health? Did not
Monseigneur Saint David say, 'It is good for me
that I have been afflicted'?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, what a queer idea!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is it?" quietly answered Marguerite. "I once
heard a young noble lady say, about three years
ago, that it was so delightful to feel well again after
being ill, that it really was worth while going through
the pain to reach it. And I think,—if I may be
pardoned the allusion,—I think they called her the
Damoiselle Elaine de Lusignan."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could not help laughing. "Well, I dare say I
did say something like it. But, Margot, it is only
when I am getting well that I think so. When I
am well, to begin with, I don't want to go through
the pain again."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"When my Damoiselle is truly well of the mortal
disease of sin, she will never need to go through the
pain again. But that will not be till the sin and the
body are laid down together."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Till we die—dost thou mean that?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Till we die."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Margot! don't. I hate to think of dying."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes. It is pleasanter to think of living. They
are well for whom all the dying comes first, and the
life is hereafter."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, I suppose I shall be all right," said I,
jumping into bed. "Monseigneur pays my Church dues,
and I hear the holy mass sung every day. I say
my prayers night and morning, and in all my life I
never was so wicked as to touch meat on a fast-day.
I think, on the whole, I am a very good girl."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Will my Damoiselle be angry if I ask her
whether the good Lord thinks the same?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Marguerite! how can I know?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Because, if Father Eudes read it right, we do
know. 'There is none that doeth good, no, not one.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Margot, how thou must listen to Father Eudes!
I hear him mumbling away, but I never bother my
head with what he is saying. He has got to say it;
and I have got to sit there till he has done; that is
all. I amuse myself in all sorts of ways—count the
bits of glass in the window, or watch the effect of
the crimson and blue light creeping over the stalls
and pillars, or think how Saint Agatha would look
in a green robe instead of a purple one. What
makes thee listen to all the stuff he says?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle sees that—saving her presence—I
am a little like her. I want to know."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But Father Eudes never tells us anything worth
knowing, surely!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! Pardon me, my Damoiselle. He reads the
true words of the good God from the holy Evangels.
Commonly they are in the holy Latin tongue, and
then I can only stand and listen reverently to the
strange sounds: the good God understands, not I.
But now and then I suppose the blessed Lord
whispers to Father Eudes to put it into French for a
moment: and that is what I am listening for all the
time. Then I treasure the words up like some
costly gem; and say them to myself a hundred
times over, so that I may never forget them any
more. Oh, it is a glad day for me when Father
Eudes says those dear words in French!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But how thou dost care about it, Margot! I
suppose thou hast so few things to think of, and
delight in—I have more to occupy me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, my Damoiselle! The blessed Lord said
that His good word was choked up and brought no
fruit when the cares of other things entered into the
heart. No, I have not much to think of but my
work, and—three graves in a village churchyard,
and one——And I have not much to delight in save
the words of the blessed Lord. Yet—let my
Damoiselle bear with me!—I am better off than she."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Margot!" And I laughed till the tears came
into my eyes. It was so excessively absurd.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Marguerite took up the lamp.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"May the good God and His angels watch over
my sweet Damoiselle," she said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And then she tucked the silken coverlet round
me, and put out the lamp, that the light should not
keep me awake; and quietly undressed herself, and
got into the trundle-bed. And I was asleep almost
before she lay down.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But, Oh dear, how ridiculous! Marguerite better
off than I am! There is no harm in her fancying
it, dear old thing; but the comicality of the idea!
Why, I dress in velvet and diaper, and she in
unshorn wool; and I lie on a feather-bed, under
fustian blankets and satin coverlets, and she sleeps
on straw with a woollen rug over her; and I ride,
and hawk, and sing, and dance, and embroider,—and
she is hard at all sorts of rough work from
morning to night. Why, she cannot wear a jewel,
nor a bit of gold, nor have any sort of pleasure
except singing and dancing, and she is too old for
both. Of course, such things as nobles amuse
themselves with are not fit for villeins. But that a
villein should fancy for a moment that she is better
off than a noble—Oh, it is too absurd for any
thing!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well, really!—better off than I am!</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="all-is-not-gold-that-glitters"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER III.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">ALL IS NOT GOLD THAT GLITTERS</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"All things that can satisfy,</span></div>
<div class="line"><span>Having Jesus, those have I."</span></div>
</div></div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>So all is over, and Alix is really gone! It was a
grand wedding. The bride was in blue velvet,
embroidered in gold, with golden girdle, fermail,[#] and
aumonière; her mantle was of gold-coloured satin,
and her under-tunic of black damask. I thought
she chose her colours with very good taste (more
than Alix generally does); but one should look nice
on one's wedding-day, if one ever is to do. And
she did look nice, in her gemmed coronal, and no
hood, and all her hair flowing over her shoulders.[#] As
for Messire Raymond, I nearly went into fits
when I caught sight of him. The creature had
dressed himself in a yellow tunic, with a brick-red
super-tunic, and flesh-coloured hose. Then he had
green boots, striped in gold; and a sky-blue mantle
studded with golden stars. Raoul said he must
fancy that he was Jupiter, since he had clad himself
with the firmament: but Amaury replied that, with
all that flame-colour, he must be Vulcan, if he were
a Pagan deity of any kind. Father Eudes sang
the mass, and Father Gilbert, the Lord of
Montbeillard's chaplain, gave the nuptial benediction.
I was dressed in pale green and dark violet, and
Lady Isabeau in rose-coloured satin.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Brooch.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] The costume restricted to brides or to queens
at their coronation.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Then came the wedding-feast in the great hall,
for which Alix and I had been preparing a week
beforehand; (and after all, I am certain Héloïse
forgot to put any more sugar in the placentæ[#]):
and then the hall was cleared, and we danced till
supper-time. Then, after supper, the minstrels
played; and Lady Isabeau and I, with all the
other ladies there, went up and put the bride to
bed: and after throwing the stocking and all the
other ceremonies,—and I am glad to say it did not
hit me,[#] but that ugly Elise de la Puissaye,—we
came back into the hall, and danced again till it
was time to take up the posset.[#] Oh, I was tired
when I did get to bed at last! I should not like
to be at another wedding next week.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Cheesecakes.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] The girl hit by the stocking was expected
to be married next.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] This serving of a posset to the newly-married pair
in the night was a purely French custom.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Well, it really is a very good thing that Alix is
gone. I have had some peace these last two days.
And there! if the very last thing she did before
going was not to do me an ill turn! She went and
persuaded Monseigneur to invite Umberge to come
and take the reins. Oh, of course </span><em class="italics">I</em><span> could not be
expected to understand anything!—(what sort of
a compliment was that to her teaching?)—I was a
mere baby, full of nonsense,—and all on in that way.
And when Monseigneur was so good as to say that
I did not like the idea of Umberge's coming, and
he thought he would try what I could do, Alix fairly
laughed in his face. As if I were fit to decide!—the
baby that I was!—she said. Thank you very
much, Dame Alix de Montbeillard; perhaps I have
more sense than you suppose. At any rate, I am
very glad of one thing,—that we have got rid of </span><em class="italics">you</em><span>.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh dear! I wonder whether any body ever thinks
that it would be nice to get rid of me? But then
I am not disagreeable, like Alix. I am sure I am not.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Now, why is it that when one gets something
one has been wishing for a long while, one does
</span><em class="italics">not</em><span> feel satisfied with it? I have been fancying
for months how pleasant it would be when Alix
was gone, and there would be no one to find fault
with me. Yet it is not pleasant at all. I thought
it would be peaceful, and it is dull. And only this
afternoon Raoul was as cross with me as he could
be. Monseigneur took my part, as he well might,
because of course I was right; but still it was
disagreeable. Why don't I feel more happy?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I thought I would see what Marguerite would
say, and I asked her what she thought about it.
She only smiled, and said,—"Such is the way of
the world, my Damoiselle, since men forsook the
peaceful paths of God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But why do things look so much more delightful
beforehand than when they come?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The Damoiselle has a vivid fancy. Does she
never find that things look more unpleasant at a
distance?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, I don't know—perhaps, sometimes," I
said. "But disagreeable things are always
disagreeable."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I suppose something in my face made Marguerite
answer—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is the coming of the Lady Umberge disagreeable
to my Damoiselle?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, as to that, I don't care much about it," said
I. "But I do want to hear from Guy."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Ay, that is coming to be the cry in my heart
now. I want to hear from Guy! I want to know
where he is, and what he is doing, and whether
he is made a Count yet, and—Oh dear, dear!—whether
that dreadful beautiful lady, whom he is
to like so much better than me, has appeared.
That could not happen to me. I could never love
any body better than Guy.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I should so like a confidante of my own rank and
age. Umberge would never do at all, and she is
quite fifteen years older than I am. If I had had
a sister, a year older or younger than myself, that
would have been about the right thing. Nobody
ever was my confidante except Guy. And I wander
about his chamber very much as Level does, and
feel, I should imagine, very much like him when he
holds up one paw, and looks up at me, and plainly
says with his dog-face,—"Where is he?—and is he
never coming back?" And I can only put my
cheek down on his great soft head, and stroke his
velvet ears, and feel with him. For I know so little
more than he does.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It must be dreadful for dogs, if they want to know!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Here is Umberge at last. She came last night,
and Guillot with her, and Valence and Aline. They
are nice playthings, or would be, if I might have my
own way. But—I cannot quite understand it—the
Umberge who has come to live here seems quite a
different woman from the Umberge who used to
come for an afternoon. She used to kiss me, and
call me "darling," and praise my maccaroons. But
this Umberge has kept me running about the house
all morning, while she sits in a curule chair with a
bit of embroidery, and says, "Young feet do not
tire," and "You know where everything is, and you
are accustomed to the maids." It looks as if she
thought I was a superior sort of maid. Then, when
our gracious Lord comes in, she is all velvet, and
"dear Elaines" me, and tells him I am such a sweet
creature—ready to run about and do any thing for
any body.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>If there is one thing I do despise, it is that sort of
woman. Alix never served me like that. She was
sharp, but she was honest. If Monseigneur praised
the placentæ, she always told him when I had made
them, and would not take praise for what was not
her work.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I shall never be able to get along with Umberge,
if this morning is to be a specimen of every day.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh dear! I wish Alix had not gone! And I wish,
I wish we could hear from Guy!</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Things do not go on as smoothly as they used
to do. I think Monseigneur himself sees it now.
Umberge is not fond of trouble, and instead of
superintending every thing, as Alix did, always
seeing after the maids, up early and down late, she
just takes her ease, and expects things to go right
without any trouble on her part. Why, she never
rises in the morning before six, and she spends a
couple of hours in dressing. It is no good to tell
her of any thing that is wanted, for she seems to
expect every thing to mend itself. Yesterday
morning, one of the jacinths dropped out of the sheet on
my bed,[#] and I told Umberge—(Alix was always
particular about any thing of that kind being
reported to her directly)—but she only said,
"Indeed? Well, I suppose you can sleep as well
without it." But it was last night that Monseigneur
seemed vexed. We had guests to supper, and I am
sure I did my best to have things nice; but every
thing seemed to go wrong. Umberge apparently
thought the supper would order itself in the first
place, and cook itself in the second, for beyond
telling me to see that all was right, she took no care
about it at all, but sat embroidering. The dining-room
was only just ready in time, and the minstrels
were half an hour behind time; the pastry was
overbaked, and the bread quite cold. There was no
subtlety[#] with the third course, and the fresh rushes
would have been forgotten if I had not asked Robert
about them. I was vexed, for Alix was there
herself, and I knew what she would think,—to say
nothing of the other guests. I do think it is too bad
of Umberge to leave me all the cares and responsibilities
of mistress, while she calmly appropriates the
position and the credit, and then scolds me if every
thing is not perfection. Why, I must go and dress
some time; and was it my fault if Denise left the
pies in too long while I was dressing, or did not
attend to my order to have the bread hot[#] at the
last minute? I cannot be every where!</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] How jewels were set in linen sheets is a mystery,
but there is abundant evidence of the fact.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] Ornamental centre-piece.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] It was considered of consequence that the bread
at a feast should be as new as possible.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>My gracious Lord did not blame me; he asked
Umberge and me together how it happened that all
these things were wrong: and I declare, if Umberge
did not say, "Elaine had the ordering of it;
Monseigneur will please to ask her." I am afraid I lost
my temper, for I said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes, Monseigneur, I had the ordering of it, for
my fair sister took no care of any thing; and if I
could have had three pairs of hands, and been in six
places at once, perhaps things might have been right."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Monseigneur only laughed, and patted my head.
But this evening I heard him say to Guillot, just as
I was entering the hall—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Fair Son, thy fair wife puts too much on the
child Elaine."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guillot laughed, rubbed his forehead, and
answered—"Fair Father, it will take more than me
to stop her."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What! canst thou not rule thine own wife?"
demanded our gracious Lord.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Never tried, Monseigneur," said Guillot. "Too
late to begin."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And Monseigneur only said, with a sigh,—"I
wonder when we shall hear from Guy!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guillot looked relieved, and (seeing me, I think)
they went on to talk of something else.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But everything seems changed since they came.
Except for my gracious Lord and Amaury and
Raoul. It does not feel like home.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Alix rode over this afternoon. I took her to my
bower in the turret, and almost directly she asked
me,—"How do you get on with our fair sister?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And I said,—"O Alix! I wish thou wouldst come back!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She laughed, and replied,—"What would my lord
say, child? I thought you were not very comfortable."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What made thee think so, Alix? Was it Tuesday night?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Tuesday night—the supper? I guessed you had
seen to it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why?—was it so very bad?" said I, penitently.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Bad?—it was carelessness and neglect beyond
endurance," she said. "No, I saw the maids
wanted the mistress's eye; and Umberge evidently
had not given it; and I thought you had tried to
throw yourself into the gap, and—as such an
inexperienced young thing would—had failed."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I really was pleased when Alix said that.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then thou wert not vexed with me, Alix?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Not I. You did your best. I was vexed
enough with Umberge. I knew she was lazy, but I
did not expect her to discredit the house like that."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"She seems quite altered since she came here,"
I said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, you never can tell how people will turn out
till you come to live with them," said Alix. "So
you are not so very glad, after all, to lose me, little
one?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was startled, for I never supposed that Alix had
guessed that. I did not know what to say.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, child, did you think I had no eyes?" she
added. "You know you were glad."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I did what I generally do—hesitated for a
moment, and then came out bluntly with the
truth—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, Alix, I was glad. But I am not now."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Alix laughed. "That is right," she said; "always
tell the plain truth, Elaine. You will find many a
time, as you go through life, child, that the prettiest
pasties are not always the best flavoured, nor the
plainest say[#] the worst to wear."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] A common quality of silk.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I suppose it is so. But I never should have
guessed that I should be wishing for Alix to come
back.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Marguerite," I said one morning as I was
dressing, "dost thou think it would be wrong if I
were to pray for a letter from Guy?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I cannot think it wrong to pray for anything,"
she answered, "provided we are willing that the
good God should choose for us in the end."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, but I am not sure that I am willing to
have that."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is my Damoiselle as wise as the good Lord?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh no, of course not! But still"——</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But still, my Damoiselle would like always to
have her own way."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes, I should, Margot."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, if there be one thing for which I am thankful
it is that the good Lord has not given me much of
my own way. It would have been very bad for me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Perhaps, for a villein, it might," said I; "but
nobles are different."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Possibly, even for the nobles," said Marguerite,
"the good Lord might be the best chooser."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But it seems to me, if we left everything in
that way, we should never pray at all."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Let my Damoiselle pardon me. That we have
full trust in a friend's wisdom is scarcely a reason
why we should not ask his counsel."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But the friend cannot know what advice you
need. The Lord knows all about it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does my Damoiselle never tell her thoughts to
Monseigneur Guy because he knows that she is
likely to think this or that?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, but it is such pleasure to tell one's thoughts
to Guy," I replied. "He generally thinks as I do;
and when he does not, he talks the thing over
with me, and it usually ends in my thinking as he
does. Then if I am sad, he comforts me; and if I
am rejoicing, he rejoices with me; and—O Margot! it
is like talking to another me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle," said Marguerite, with a
peculiar smile which I have seen on her lips before,
and never could understand—it is so glad and
sunny, yet quiet and deep, as if she were rejoicing
over some hidden treasure which she had all to
herself,—"My Damoiselle has said well. 'He that
is joined to the Lord is one spirit.' 'If we walk in
the light, as He is in the light, we have fellowship
one with another.' My Damoiselle does not yet
know what it is to speak out freely all her thoughts
to One who is infinitely high and wise, and who
loves her with an infinite love. I am but a poor
ignorant villein woman: I know very little about
any thing. Well! I take my ignorant mind to Him
who knows all things, and who can foresee the end
from the beginning. I do not know any grand
words to pray with. I just say, 'Sir[#] God, I am
very much puzzled. I do not know what to do for
the best. Put the best thing into my head. Thou
knowest.' Every night, before I go to sleep, the
last thing, I say in my heart, 'Sir God, I do not
know what is good, and what is evil for me. Thou
knowest. Give me the good things to-night, and
keep the evil ones away.' I suppose, if I were
very wise and clever, I should not make such poor,
ignorant prayers. I should know then what would
be best to do. Yet I do not think I should be any
better off, for then I should see so much less of the
good Lord. I would rather have more of the good
God, and less of the quick wit and the ready tongue."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Though this title will certainly sound strange,
if not irreverent, to
modern ears, it was meant as the most reverent
epithet known to those who used it.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>It would be nice to feel as Margot does. I cannot
think where she got it But it would never do for
me, who am noble, to take pattern from a poor
villein. I suppose such thoughts are good for low,
ignorant people.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>What should I have done if I had been born a
villein? I cannot imagine what it would feel like.
I am very glad I was not. But of course I cannot
tell what it would feel like, because nobles have
thoughts and feelings of quite a different sort to
common people.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I suppose Guy would say that was one of my
queer notions. He always says more queer ideas
come into my head than any one else's.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>O Guy, Guy!—when shall I see thee again? Two
whole years, and not a word from thee! Art thou
languishing in some Paynim dungeon? Hast thou
fallen in some battle? Or has the beautiful lady
come, and thy little Lynette is forgotten?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I have been asking Father Eudes to tell me
something about the Holy Land, for I want to be
able to picture to myself the place where Guy is.
And of course Father Eudes can tell, for he knows
all about every thing; and he had an uncle who was
a holy palmer, and visited the blessed Sepulchre,
and used to tell most beautiful legends, he says,
about the Holy Land. Beside which, his own father
fought for the Sepulchre in the second Crusade, and
dwelt in that country for several years.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Father Eudes says it is nearly a hundred years
since the kingdom of Jerusalem was founded, for it
was in the year of our Lord 1099, at the time of
the first Crusade. The first King was the gallant
Count Godefroy of Boulogne, who was unanimously
chosen by all the Christian warriors after the Holy
City was taken: but he would never call himself
King, but only "Defender of the Holy Sepulchre." But,
alas!—the good King Godefroy only reigned
one year; and on his death the Princes all assembled
in the Church of the Holy Sepulchre, which they
also call the Temple, to elect a successor. And
because there were great contentions among them,
they resolved to decide the choice by lot: and they
stood around the tomb of our Lord, each holding a
long taper, and earnestly besought the good God
that He would cause the taper held by him who
ought to be King of Jerusalem to be lighted by
miracle. And when the prayer was ended, one of
the tapers was found to be burning. It was that
held by Duke Robert the Courthose, son of Lord
William the Norman, who conquered England. But
to the horror of all the Princes, Duke Robert blew
out the taper, and refused to be King. He said
that he was not worthy to wear a crown of gold in
that place where for his sins our Lord had worn
a crown of thorns. And I really have always felt
puzzled to know whether he acted very piously or
very impiously. So, in the end, the brother of King
Godefroy was chosen; but he also left no child,
though he reigned eighteen years. But the Lady
Ida, his sister, who was a very wise and preux[#]
lady, had a son, and he reigned after his uncle for
thirteen years: yet at his death he left four
daughters, and no son. And Father Eudes thinks
that this showed the displeasure of our Lord, who
had willed that the kingdom of Jerusalem should
belong to our Lords the Kings of England, and they
wickedly refused to receive it.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Brave, noble, chivalrous.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>For of course it is the bounden duty of all
Christian men to rescue the Holy Land out of the hands
of Paynims, Jews, and such horrible heretics, who
all worship the Devil, and bow down to stocks and
stones: since this land belonged to our Lord Jesus
Christ, who was King of it by holy Mary His
mother, and He died seised of the same. For which
reason all Christian men, who are the right heirs
of our said Lord, ought to recover their inheritance
in that land, and not leave it in the hands of wicked
heretics, who have no right to it at all, since they
are not the children and right heirs of Jesus Christ
our Lord.[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] This singular reasoning is borrowed from Sir
John Mandeville.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Well! when King Beaudouin II. was dead, the
Holy Land fell to the eldest of his four daughters,
who was named the Lady Melisende: and she wedded
Count Foulques of Anjou, and from her all the kings
since then have come: so now it seems settled in the
line of Anjou. I suppose our Lords the Kings of
England, therefore, have no right to it any more.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I cannot help feeling sorry that Duke Robert
blew out the taper. I would not have done it, if it
had been mine. I think to be the Queen of
Jerusalem would be the grandest thing in all the
world—even better than to be the Empress of
Monseigneur the Cæsar. Is it not the Land of God?</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>A letter at last!—a letter from Guy! And he
is high in the King's favour, and has won booty to
the amount of eighteen thousand golden crowns,
and he wants Amaury and me to go to him at
once. I keep dancing about and singing, I am so
delighted. And not one word of the beautiful
lady! That is best of all.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy says the King is a mesel,[#] and dwells in
chambers to himself; and he has never been
married, so there is no Queen, except the widow of the
late King his father; and she is of the high blood
of Messeigneurs the Cæsars,[#] but is not the mother
of the King. He is like Guy, for his own mother,
who was the Damoiselle de Courtenay, died when
he was very young: and he has one sister of the
whole blood, who is called the Lady Sybil; and
one sister of the half blood, who is called the Lady
Isabel. The Lady Sybil is a widow, though she is
younger than Alix: for she was the wife of
Monseigneur Guillaume, the Marquis of Montferrat, who
died about the time Guy reached the Holy Land;
and she has one child, Monseigneur Beaudouin,
named after the King his uncle. The Lady Isabel
is not yet married, and she is about fourteen years
old. Guy writes that the King, and the ladies his
sisters, and the old Queen, are all very good to
him, and he is prospering marvellously.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Leper.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] She was Maria, daughter (some writers say niece)
of the Emperor Manuel Comnemus.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Guy's letter was brought by a holy palmer, late
last night. I am sure the palmer must be a very
holy man, for he had scallops fastened to his
shovel-hat, and cross-keys embroidered on his bosom, and
bells upon his sleeve, and the holy cross upon his
shoulder.[#] His cross was green, so he must be a
Fleming.[#] And whenever I came near him, there
was such a disagreeable smell, that he must, I am
sure, be very holy indeed. He told Robert, and
Marguerite told me, that he had not changed his
clothes for three whole years. What a holy man
he must be! I was very glad when he gave me
his benediction, though I did try to keep as much
to windward of him as I could, and I put a sprig
of lavender in my handkerchief before I asked for
it. I am rather afraid Father Eudes would say it
was wicked of me to put that sprig of lavender in
my handkerchief. But really I think I should have
felt quite disgusted if I had not done so. And
why should it be holy not to wash one's self? Why
don't they always leave babies unwashed, if it be,
that they might grow up to be holy men and women?</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] The scallop-shell denoted a pilgrim
to the shrine of St. James of
Compostella; the cross-keys, to Rome; the bells,
to Canterbury (hence
the "Canterbury bell"); and the cross,
to the Holy Sepulchre.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] The Flemings wore a green cross, the French a red,
the English a
white one. The proverbial "Red Cross Knight,"
therefore, strictly
speaking, could not be an Englishman.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I wonder if the angels like smells which we think
disagreeable. If they do, of course that would
account for it. Yet one cannot imagine an angel with
soiled feathers.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I suppose Guy would say that was another of
my queer ideas. Oh, I am so delighted that we
have heard from Guy!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Monseigneur says I must have lots of new dresses
to take with me. I have been wishing, ever so long,
for a fine mantle of black cloth, lined with minever:
and he says I shall have it. And I want a golden
girdle, and a new aumonière.[#] I should like a
diaper[#] gown, too,—red and black; and a shot silk,
blue one way, and gold the other.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] The bag which depended from the girdle.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] This term seems to have indicated stuff woven
in any small regular pattern, not flowers.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>My gracious Lord asked me what gems I would
best like.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, agate or cornelian, if it please your
Nobility," said I, "because they make people amiable."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>He pinched my ear, and said he thought I was
amiable enough: he would give me a set of jacinths.[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] These gems were believed to possess the properties
in question.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"What, to send me to sleep?" said I, laughing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Just so," he answered. "Thou art somewhat too
wide-awake."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What do you please to mean, Monseigneur?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>He smiled, but then sighed heavily, and stroked
my head.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, my little Lynette!" he said. "If thy
blessed mother had but lived! I know not—truly
I know not—whether I act for thy real welfare or
not. The good God forgive our blunders, poor
blindlings that we are!" And he rose and went
away.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But of course it must be for my welfare that I
should go to Guy, and get some appointment in the
household of one of the Princesses, and see life,
and—well, I don't know about getting married. I
might not have so much of my own way. And I
like that dearly. Besides, if I were married I could
not be always with Guy. I think I won't, on the
whole.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I asked Marguerite to-night if she could tell
why holy people did not wash: and she said she
thought they did.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well," said I, "but yonder holy palmer had
not taken his clothes off for three years; and I am
sure, Margot, he did not smell nice."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I think," said Marguerite, "under leave of my
Damoiselle, he would have been at least as holy if
he had changed them once a month."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Margot! is not that heterodoxy?" asked I,
laughing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Let my Damoiselle pardon her servant—no!
Did not Monseigneur Saint Paul himself say that
men should wash their bodies with pure water?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am sure I don't know," said I. "I always
thought, the holier you were, and the dirtier. And
that is one reason why I always thought, too, that
I could never be holy. I should want my hands
and face clean, at least."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Did my Damoiselle think she could never be holy?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes, I did, Margot, and do."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wherefore? Let her forgive her poor servant."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, holiness seems to mean all sorts of
unpleasant things," said I. "You must not wash, nor lie
on a comfortable bed, nor wear anything nice, nor
dance, nor sing, nor have any pleasure. I don't want
to be holy. I really could not do with it, Margot."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Under my Damoiselle's leave, all those things
she has mentioned seem to me to be outside things.
And—unless I mistake, for I am but an ignorant
creature—holiness must be something inside. My
soul is inside of me; and to clean my soul, I must
have something that will go inside to it. The inside
principle will be sure to put all the outside things
straight, will it not? But I do not see what the
outside things can do to the inside—except that
sometimes they make us cross. But then it is we
who are wrong, not they."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou suppose it is wicked to be cross, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Damoiselle, Father Eudes once read a list of the
good things that a true Christian ought to have in
his heart,—there were nine of them: 'love, joy,
peace, long-suffering, gentleness, goodness, faith,
meekness, temperance.' I think one cannot have
many of them when one is cross and peevish."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then thou dost not think it sinful to delight in
fine clothes and jewels, and lie in a soft bed, and
have dainties for dinner?—for all those are outside."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! yes, my Damoiselle. Those are the world's
substitute for happiness."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, what dost thou mean, Margot?" laughed
I. "Have I not all these good things?—and am I
not happy?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"All these,—ah, yes. But, happy? No, no. My
Damoiselle is not happy."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, what wilt thou say next?" cried I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Will my Damoiselle permit her poor servant to
ask her a question?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh yes!—anything thou wilt."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then is my Damoiselle quite certain—safely,
happily certain—what will become of her when she
shall die?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Margot, what an ugly question! I hate to
think of it Why, I suppose I shall go to Heaven—why
should I not? Don't all nobles go there,
except those who are very, very wicked?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! She hates to think of it? Wherefore?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, everybody does, of course."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Let my Damoiselle pardon me. Not I."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, thou art an old woman, and hast outlived
thy youth and its pleasures. No wonder."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle will find, as life goes on, that
the older she grows, the more distasteful that
thought becomes to her. That is, unless she should
learn to be happy, which may the good God grant!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could not help laughing heartily. For a young
noble maiden like me, to take lessons of a forlorn
old creature like Margot, in the art of being happy,
did seem so very ridiculous.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, my Damoiselle may laugh now," said
Marguerite in her quiet way; "but I have told the
sober truth."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh dear!" said I. "I think I had better sleep
on it.—Margot, art thou not very much pleased at
the thought of going to the Holy Land?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, yes, my Damoiselle, very much. I would
dearly like to behold the earth which the feet of the
blessed Lord have trodden,—the lake on which He
walked, and the hill from which He went up. Ah!
'He shall so come'—'this same Jesus'!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I looked at her in astonishment. The worn old
face and sunken eyes seemed alight with some
hidden rapture. I could not understand her.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And the Holy Sepulchre!" I said; for that is
holiest of all the holy places, as everybody knows.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, I should not so much care to see that,"
answered Marguerite, to my surprise. "'He is not
there; He is risen.' If a dear friend of mine had
gone on a journey, I should not make a pet of the
saddle on which he rode away. I should rather
want not to see it, for it would always remind me
that he was gone."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Marguerite!" exclaimed I, "dost thou not know
that a neuvaine offered at the Holy Sepulchre
is of more efficacy than ten offered at any other
altar?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Will my Damoiselle give me leave to wait till
I see it? Of course, if the good God choose to
have it so, there is an end of the matter. But I
think I would rather be sure. For me, I should like
to pray in the Church of the Nativity, to thank Him
for coming as a little babe into this weary world:
and in the Church of the Ascension, to beg Him to
hasten His coming again."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, the Church of the Ascension!" said I.
"There are pillars in that church, nearly close to
the wall; and the man who can creep between the
wall and the pillar has full remission of all his
sins."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is that in the holy Evangel?" asked
Marguerite; but I could not tell her.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I fancy there may be some mistake about that,"
she added. "Of course, if it be in the holy
Evangel! But it does not look quite of a piece with
what Father Eudes reads. He read one day out of
the writing of Monseigneur Saint John, that the
blood of Jesus Christ, the blessed Lord, cleansed
us from all sin: and another time—I think he said
it was from the Evangel of Monseigneur Saint
Matthew—he read that if a man did but ask the
good God for salvation, it should be given him.
Well! I asked, and He gave it me. Could He give
me anything more?—or would He be likely to do it
because I crept between a wall and a pillar?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, Marguerite! Hast thou been listening to
some of those wicked Lyonnese, that go preaching
up and down? Dost thou not know that King
Henry the father hath strictly forbidden any man to
harbour one of that rabble?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If it please my Damoiselle, I know nothing at
all about them."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, it is a merchant of Lyons, named Pierre
Waldo, and a lot more with him; they go up and
down the country, preaching, and corrupting people
from the pure Catholic faith. Hast thou listened
to any such preachers, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha, my Damoiselle, what know I? There was
a Grey Friar at the Cross a few weeks since"——</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, of course, the holy brethren of Saint
Augustine are all right," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, and last Sunday there was a man there,
not exactly in a friar's robe, but clad in sackcloth,
as if he were in mourning; but he said none but
very good words; they were just like the holy
Evangel which Father Eudes reads. Very comforting
words they were, too. He said the good Lord
cared even for the sparrows, poor little things!—and
very much more for us that trusted Him. I should
like to hear him preach again."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Take care how thou dost!" said I, as I lay
down in bed. "I am afraid, Margot, he is one of
those Lyonnese serpents."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well!" said Marguerite, as she tucked me up,
"he had no sting, if he were."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, the sting comes afterwards," said I. "And
thou art but a poor villein, and ignorant, and quite
unable to judge which is the true doctrine of holy
Church, and which the wicked heresy that we must
shut our ears against."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"True, my Damoiselle," said old Marguerite
meekly. "But to say that the dear, blessed Lord
cares for His poor servants—no, no!—that is no
heresy!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What is heresy?" said I. "And what is
truth? Oh dear! If one might know, one's own self!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah! Pilatus asked that of the good God, when
He stood before his judgment-seat. But he did not
wait for the answer."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I wish he had done!" I answered. "Then we
might have known it. But I suppose the good Lord
would have told him to submit himself to the
Church. So we should not have been much better
off, because we do know that."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"We are better off, my Damoiselle," said old
Marguerite. "For though the good God did not
answer Pilatus—maybe he was not worthy—He did
answer the same question, asked by Monseigneur
Saint Thomas. Did not my Damoiselle hear Father
Eudes read that in French? It was only a few
weeks ago."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I shook my head. I cannot imagine when or how
Marguerite does hear all these things. I never do.
But she went on.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It was one day when the good Lord had told
Messeigneurs the Apostles that He was going to
ascend to Heaven: and He said, 'The way ye know.' But
Monseigneur Saint Thomas—ah! he was rather
like my Damoiselle; he wanted to know!—he
replied that they did not know the way. (If he had
not been a holy apostle, I should not have thought it
very civil to contradict his Seigneur, let alone the
good Lord.) But the good God was not angry:
He saw, I suppose, that Monseigneur Saint Thomas
did not mean anything wrong, but he wanted to
know, like a damoiselle of the House of Lusignan.
So He said, 'I am the way, and the truth, and the
life: no man cometh unto the Father but by Me.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But I do not see what that means," said I.
"Truth cannot be a person,—a man cannot be a
way. Of course it is a figure of speech; but still I
do not see what it means."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was very sleepy, and I fancy rather cross.
Marguerite stooped and kissed my hand, and then
turned and put out the light.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Rest, my fair Damoiselle," she said, tenderly.
"And may the good God show my darling what it means!"</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="a-journeyand-the-end-of-it"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER IV.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">A JOURNEY—AND THE END OF IT</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"A violet by a mossy stone,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Half hidden from the eye:</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>Fair as a star when only one</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Is shining in the sky."</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>—WORDSWORTH.</span></div>
</div></div>
</div></div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Bound for the East Countrie! Ay, we are fairly
off at last, Amaury and I,—with old Marguerite,
and her niece Perette, and Bertrade, Robert's
daughter, and Robert himself, to wait upon me; and
an escort of armed men, and Amaury's attendants.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Yet it was not all brightness when we came to
leave the Castle. Alix and Messire Raymond were
there to take leave of us: and I really fancied—it
must have been fancy!—that there were tears in
Alix's eyes when she kissed me. There were none
in Umberge's, nor in Guillot's. But Raoul cried
honestly; though Amaury said afterwards that he
believed three-quarters of Raoul's tears were due to
his having to stay behind. Father Eudes gave me
his blessing; and he wept too, poor old man! I
dare say he was sorry. He was here before I was
born. Then the maidens and servants came
forward, the women kissing my hand, and the men my
robe: and last of all I came to Monseigneur, our
father.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>He folded me close in his arms, and bent his head
down upon mine; and I felt two or three hot tears
on my brow.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My little Lynette!" he said. "My little, little
girl! The one bud of my one love! Must I let
thee go? Ha, well!—it is for thy welfare. The
good God bless thee, </span><em class="italics">mignonne</em><span>, and Messeigneurs
and Mesdames the saints. Please God, little maiden,
we shall meet in Jerusalem."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Meet in Jerusalem?" I said in surprise. This
was news to me—that Monseigneur meant to take
the cross.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ay," said he softly, "in the '</span><em class="italics">Syon Aurea, ut
clarior oro</em><span>.' There is an upper City, my child,
which is fairer than the lower. Jesu, of His mercy,
bring us both there!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Amen!" said Father Eudes. "Dame Mary,
pray for us poor sinners!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>There was a great bustle after that, and noise,
and clashing; and I do not remember much
distinctly, till I got into the litter with Bertrade, and
then first Amaury set forth on his charger, with
his squires after him, and then Marguerite behind
Robert on horseback, and Perette behind Amaury's
varlet, who is a cousin of hers; and then my litter
moved forward, with the armed men around and
behind. I just saw them all clearly for one
moment—Alix with her lips set, looking at us, as if she
were determined not to say a word; and Messire
Raymond smoothing his moustache; and Guillot
with an old shoe poised in the air, which hit my
fore postilion the next minute; and Umberge with
that fair false smile with which she deludes every
one at first sight; and Monseigneur, with his arms
folded, and the tears fairly running down his cheeks,
and his lips working as if he were deeply grieved.
Just for one minute there they all stood; and I
think they will make a picture in my eyes till the
end of time for me. And then my litter was drawn
out of the Castle gate, and the horses tramped
across the drawbridge, and down the slope below:
and I drew the curtain of the litter aside, and looked
back to see my dear old home, the fair strong Castle
of Lusignan, growing less and less behind me every
moment, till at last it faded into a more dim speck
in the distance, and I felt that my long and
venturesome journey had begun.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh, why do people never let us know how much
they love us, until just as we unclasp hands and
part?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Do they always know it themselves?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And I wonder whether dying is anything like
this. Do men go a long journey to God, with an
armed escort of angels, and do they see the world
go less and less behind them as they mount? I
will ask Margot what she thinks. She is but a
villein, in truth, but then she has such curious
fancies.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I have asked Marguerite, and she shakes her head.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! no, my Damoiselle. It can be no long
journey to God. Father Eudes said but last
Sunday, reading from the Breviary, in his sermon,
that 'He is not far from every one of us.' And the
good thief Ditmas, that was crucified with God, was
there in half a day. It can only be a little way to
Heaven. Ah! much less than half a day, it must
be; for did not Monseigneur Saint Gabriel, the holy
Archangel, begin to fly when Monseigneur Saint
Daniel began to pray?—and he was there before he
had finished his beads. It is a long while since Father
Eudes told us that; and I thought it so comforting,
because it showed that Heaven was not far, and
also that the good Lord listens so quickly when we
call. Ah! I have to say, 'Wait, Héloïse!—I am
listening to Perette:' but the good Lord does not
need to do that. He can hear my Lady the Queen,
and the Lady Alix, and Monseigneur Guy, and my
Damoiselle, and her servant Marguerite, all at once."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Yes, I suppose it must be so, though I cannot
understand it. One has to believe so many things
that one cannot understand. Do we even know
how we live from day to day? Of course it is
known that we have certain organs in our bodies,
by which we breathe, and speak, and walk, and
digest food; but can any one tell </span><em class="italics">how</em><span> all they do
goes to make up what we call life? I do not believe it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We took our way by Poictiers, across the duchies
of Berry and Burgundy, and through Franche-Comté,
crossing some terrible mountains between Besançon
and Neufchatel. Then we travelled across
Switzerland—Oh, how beautiful it is! I felt as though I
should have been content to stay there, and never go
any farther. But Amaury said that was just like a
silly girl. What man, said he—with such an accent on
the </span><em class="italics">man</em><span>!—ever wanted to stop away from gorgeous
pageants and gallant deeds of arms, just to stare at
a big hill with some snow on it, or a pool of water
with some trees round it? How could any body
make a name in that foolish way?—said Messire
Amaury.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But old Marguerite thought with me. "Damoiselle,"
she said, "I am very thankful I came on this
journey. Methinks I have a better notion what
Heaven will be like than I had before we left
Poitou. I did not know the good God was so rich.
There seems to be no end to the beautiful things
He can make. Oh, how beautiful He Himself
must be! And we shall see His face. Father
Eudes read it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Whatever one says to Marguerite, she always
finds something to say in answer about the good
God. Surely she should have been a nun.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We came into Italy through two great passes,—one
over the Julier mountain, so called from Julius
Cæsar, the great Emperor, who made the road by
help of the black art, and set up two pillars on the
summit to commemorate his deeds: and then,
passing through a beautiful valley, where all flowers
of the year were out together, and there was a lovely
chain of lakes,—(which naughty Amaury scornfully
called crocuses and dirty water!)—we wound up
hill after hill, until at last it really seemed as if we
must have reached the top of the world. Here
were two small lakes, at the foot of a drear slope of
ice, which in these parts they call a glacier: and
they call them the Black Lake and the White Lake.
We had two sturdy peasants as guides over the
mountains, and I should have liked dearly to talk
with them about their country, but of course it
would not have been seemly in a damsel of my
rank: </span><em class="italics">noblesse oblige</em><span>. But I got Marguerite to ask
them several questions, for their language is
sufficiently like the Langue d'Oc[#] for us to understand
them, though they speak very thickly and indistinctly.
They told Marguerite that their beautiful
valley is named the Val Engiadina,[#] and they were
originally a colony from Italy, who fled from a
persecution of the Saracens.[#] This pass is called
the Bernina, for </span><em class="italics">berne</em><span> in their tongue signifies a bear,
and there are many bears about here in winter.
And they say this mountain is the top of the world,
for here the waters separate, on the one side flowing
far away into Asia, near the place where Adam
dwelt in Paradise;[#] and on the other, into the great
western sea,[#] which we shall shortly have to cross.
And here, on the very summit of this mountain,
dwelt a holy hermit, who gave me a shelter in his
hut, while the men camped outside round great
fires; for though it was August, yet at this great
height it was quite cold. And so, through the pass,
we wound slowly down into Italy.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Two cognate languages were at this time
spoken in France; north
of the Loire, the Langue d'Oil, and south,
the Langue d'Oc, both
words meaning </span><em class="italics small">yes</em><span class="small"> in the respective languages.
The more northern
language was the harsher, </span><em class="italics small">ch</em><span class="small"> being sounded as </span><em class="italics small">k</em><span class="small">,
just as </span><em class="italics small">church</em><span class="small"> in
England becomes </span><em class="italics small">kirk</em><span class="small"> in Scotland. </span><em class="italics small">Cher, chaise, chien</em><span class="small">,
therefore,
were pronounced </span><em class="italics small">ker, kaise, kien</em><span class="small">, in the Langue d'Oil.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] The Engadine.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] All the evil done or doing in the world was
at this time attributed
to the Saracens. The colony is supposed
to have arisen from the flight
of a group of Christians in the persecution under Diocletian.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] The Black Sea.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] The Mediterranean.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Marguerite and Perette were both full of the beauty
they had seen in the great glacier, on which they
went with the guides: but it would not have done
for a damsel of my rank, and really I saw no beauty
in it from across the lake; it looked like a quantity
of very dirty ice, with ashes scattered over it. But
they said it was full of deep cracks or fissures, in
which were the loveliest colours that human eye
could see or heart imagine.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah! I can guess now!" said Marguerite. "I
could not think what Monseigneur Saint John
meant when he said the city was gold like clear
crystal. I know now. Damoiselle, in the glacier
there are walls of light, the sweetest green shading
into blue that my Damoiselle can possibly imagine:
they must be like that, but golden. Ha! if my
Damoiselle had seen it! The great nobles have not
all the good things. It is well not to be so high up
that one cannot see the riches of the good God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She has the queerest notions!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well!—we travelled on through Lombardy, and
tarried a few days at Milan, whence we journeyed to
Venice, which is the strangest place I ever saw or
dreamed of, for all the streets are canals, and one
calls for one's boat where other people order their
horses. The Duke of Venice, who is called the
Doge, was very kind to us. He told us at supper a
comical story of a Duchess of Venice who lived
about a hundred years ago. She so dearly loved
ease and luxury that she thought it too much
trouble to eat with her fingers like everybody else;
and she actually caused her attendants to cut her
meat into little pieces, like dice, and then she had a
curious instrument with two prongs,[#] made of gold,
with which she picked up the bits and put them in
her dainty mouth. Only fancy!</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] The first fork on record.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>At Venice we embarked, and sailed to Messina,
where most of the pilgrims for the Holy Land
assemble, as it is the most convenient port. We did
not go overland, as some pilgrims do, through the
dominions of the Byzantine Cæsar;[#] but we sailed
thence to Crete. I was rather sorry to miss
Byzantium,[#] both on account of the beautiful stuffs which
are sold there, and the holy relics: but since I have
seen a spine of the crown of thorns, which the Lady
de Montbeillard has—she gave seven hundred
crowns for it to Monseigneur de Rheims[#]—I did
not care so much about the relics as I might otherwise
have done. Perhaps I shall meet with the same
kind of stuffs in Palestine; and certainly there will
be relics enough.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] The Eastern Emperor; his dominions in Europe extended over
Greece and Turkey.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] Constantinople.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] The Archbishop.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>From Crete we sailed to Rhodes, and thence to
Cyprus. They all say that I am an excellent sailor,
for I feel no illness nor inconvenience at all; but
poor Bertrade has been dreadfully ill, and Marguerite
and Perette say they both feel very uncomfortable
on the water. At Cyprus is an abbey of monks, on
the Hill of the Holy Cross; and here Amaury and
his men were housed for the night, and I and my
women at a convent of nuns not far off. At the
Abbey they have a cross, which they say is the very
cross on which our Lord suffered, but some say it is
only the cross of Ditmas, the good thief. I was
rather puzzled to know whether, there being a doubt
whether it really is the holy cross, it ought to be
worshipped. If it be only a piece of common wood,
I suppose it would be idolatry. So I thought it
more right and seemly to profess to have a bad
headache, and decline to mount the hill. I asked
Amaury what he had done.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh! worshipped it, of course," said he.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But how if it were not the true cross?" I asked.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My sister, wouldst thou have a knight thus
discourteous? The monks believe it true. It would
have hurt their feelings to show any doubt."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But, Amaury, it would be idolatry!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha, bah!" he answered. "The angels will see it
put to the right account—no doubt of that. Dear
me!—if one is to be for ever considering little
scruples like that, why, there would be no end to
them—one would never do any thing."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then I asked Marguerite if she went up to worship
the holy cross.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, Damoiselle," said she. "The Grey Friar
said we worship not the cross, but the good God that
died thereon. And I suppose He is as near to us at
the bottom of the hill as at the top."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well, it does look reasonable, I must say. But it
must be one of Marguerite's queer notions. There
would be no good in relics and holy places if that
were always true.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>This island of Cyprus is large and fair. It was of
old time dedicated by the Paynims to Venus, their
goddess of beauty: but when it fell into Christian
hands, it was consecrated anew to Mary the holy
Mother.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>From Cyprus we sailed again, a day and a half, to
Tyre; but we did not land there, but coasted southwards
to the great city of Acre, and there at last we
took land in Palestine.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Here we were lodged in the castle, which is very
strong: and we found already here some friends of
Amaury, the Baron de Montluc and his two sons,
who had landed about three weeks before us. Hence
we despatched a letter to Guy. I was the writer, of
course, for Amaury can write nothing but his name;
but he signed the letter with me. Messire Renaud
de Montluc, who was setting out for the Holy City,
undertook to see the letter safe. We were to follow
more slowly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We remained at Acre about ten days. Then we set
forth, Amaury and I, the Baron de Montluc and his
son Messire Tristan, and several other knights who
were waiting for a company, with our respective
trains; and the Governor of Acre lent us an
additional convoy of armed men, to see us safe to the
Holy City.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>This was my first experience of tent life; and very
strange it felt, and horribly insecure. I, accustomed
to dwell within walls several feet thick, with
portcullis and doors guarded by bolts and bars, in a
chamber opening on an inner court, to have no more
than one fold of goats' hair canvas between me and
the outside world! True, the men-at-arms were
camped outside; but that was no more than a castle
garrison: and where was the castle?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Margot," said I, "dost thou not feel horribly
frightened?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>For of course, she, a villein, would be more
accessible to fear than a noble.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh no, my Damoiselle," she said very quietly.
"Is it not in the holy Psalter that 'the Angel of the
Lord encampeth round about them that fear Him,
and delivereth them'? We are as safe as in the
Castle of Lusignan."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It is a very good thing for Marguerite and the
maidens that I am here. Because, of course, the holy
angels, who are of high rank, would never think of
taking care of mere villeins. It must mean persons
of noble blood.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We journeyed on southwards slowly, pausing at
the holy places—Capernaum, where Messeigneurs
Saint Peter and Saint Andrew dwelt before they
followed our Lord; and where Monseigneur Saint
Peter left Madame his wife, and his daughter,
Madame Saint Petronilla, when he became our
Lord's disciple. Of course, he was obliged to leave
them behind, for a holy apostle could not have a
wife. (Marguerite says that man in sackcloth, who
preached at the Cross at Lusignan, said that in the
early ages of the Church, priests and even bishops
used to be married men, and that it would have been
better if they had continued to be so. I am afraid he
must be a very wicked person, and one of those
heretical Waldenses.) We also tarried a while at
Cæsarea, where our Lord gave the keys to
Monseigneur Saint Peter, and appointed him the first
Bishop of Rome; and Nazareth, where our Lady
was born and spent her early life. Not far from
Neapolis,[#] anciently called Sychem, they show the
ruins of a palace, where dwelt King Ahab, who was
a very wicked Paynim, and had a Saracen to his
wife. At Neapolis is the well of Monseigneur Saint
Jacob, on which our Lord once sat when He was
weary. This was the only holy place we passed
which old Marguerite had the curiosity to go and see.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Nablous.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Now, what made thee care more for that than
any other?" I asked her. "Of course it was a
holy place, but there was nothing to look at save
a stone well in a valley. Our Lady's Fountain, at
Nazareth, was much prettier."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, my Damoiselle is young and blithe!" she
said, and smiled. "It is long, long since I was a
young mother like our Lady, and longer still since
I was a little child. But the bare old well in the
stony valley—that came home to me. He was
weary! Yet He was God. He is rested now, on
the throne of His glory: yet He cares for me, that
am weary still. So I just knelt down at the old
well, and I said to Him, in my ignorant way,—'Fair
Father,[#] Jesu Christ, I thank Thee that
Thou wert weary, and that by Thy weariness thou
hast given me rest.' It felt to rest me,—a visit to
the place where He sat, tired and hungry. But
my Damoiselle cannot understand."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] "Bel Père"—one of the invocations then usual.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"No, Margot, I don't at all," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, no! It takes a tired man to know the
sweetness of rest."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Three days' journey through the Val de Luna,
which used to be called the Vale of Ajalon, brought
us to the city of Gran David, which was of old
named Gibeon. The valley is styled De Luna
because it was here that Monseigneur Saint Joshua
commanded the sun and moon to stand still while
he vanquished the Paynims. From Gran David it
is only one day's journey to the Holy City.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"To-morrow, Margot!" said I, in great glee.
"Only to-morrow, we shall see the Holy Sepulchre!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! Thanks be to the good God. And we need
not wait till to-morrow to see Him that rose from it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, Marguerite, dost thou ever have visions?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Visions? Oh no! Those are for the holy
saints; not for a poor ignorant villein woman like me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then what didst thou mean, just now?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, my Damoiselle cannot understand."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Margot, I don't like that. Thou art always
saying it. I want to understand."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then she must ask the good God to show her."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And that is all I can get out of her.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Short of a league from the Holy City is the
little hill called Mont Joie, because from it the
palmers catch the first glimpse of the blessed
Jerusalem. We were mounting, as it seemed to me, a
low hillock, when Amaury rode up beside me, and
parting the curtains, said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, Elaine, look out, for we are on the Mont
Joie. Wilt thou light down?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Certainly," I answered.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>So Amaury stopped the litter, and gave me his
hand, and I jumped out. He took me to the place
where the palmers kneel in thanksgiving for being
brought thus far on their journey: and here I had
my first sight of the Holy City.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It is but a small city, yet strongly fortified, having
three walls. No Paynim is permitted to enter it,
nor of course any heathen Jew. I cannot imagine
how it was that the good God ever suffered the
Holy City, even for an hour, to be in the hands of
those wicked people. Yet last night, in the tent,
if Marguerite did not ask me whether Monseigneur
Saint Paul was not a Jew! I was shocked.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh dear, no!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I heard somebody say so," she replied.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I should think it was some Paynim," said I.
"Why, of course none of the holy Apostles were
Jews. That miscreant Judas Iscariot, and Pontius
Pilatus, and all those wicked people, I suppose, were
Jews: but not the holy Apostles and the saints.
It is quite shocking to think of such a thing!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then what were they, if my Damoiselle pleases?"
said Marguerite.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, they were of some other nation," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>For really, I do not know of what nation they
were,—only that they could never have been Jews.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Amaury said that we must first visit the Holy
Sepulchre; so, though I was dying to have news
of Guy, I comforted myself with the thought that
I should hereby acquire so much more merit than
if I had not cared about it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We entered the Holy City by the west gate, just
as the dusk was beginning; and passing in single
file along the streets, we descended the hill of Zion
to the Holy Sepulchre.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>In this church are kept many holy relics. In
the courtyard is the prison where our Lord was
confined after His betrayal, and the pillar to which
He was bound when scourged: and in the portico
the lance which pierced His side. The stone which
the Angel rolled away from the sepulchre is now
broken in two. Here our Lady died, and was
buried in the Church of Saint Mary, close by. In
this church is kept the cup of our Lord, out of
which He habitually drank: it is of silver, with a
handle on each side, and holds about a quart. Here
also is the sponge which was held to His mouth,
and the crown of thorns. (By a miracle of the
good God, one half of the crown is also at
Byzantium.) The tomb of our Lord is seven feet long,
and rises three palms from the floor; fifteen golden
lamps burn before it, day and night. I told the
whole Rosary at the holy tomb, or should have
done, for I felt that the longer I waited to see
Guy, the more merit I should heap up: but Amaury
became impatient, and insisted on my coming when
a Pater and eight Aves were still to say.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then we mounted the hill of Zion again, passing
the church built in honour of the Prince of the
Apostles, on the spot where he denied our Lord:
and so we reached the King's Palace at last.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Amaury sprang from his horse, and motioned my
postilion to draw up in front of the chief gate. I
heard him say to the porter—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is Sir Guy de Lusignan here?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My gracious Lord, the Count of Joppa and
Ascalon, is here, if it like you, noble Sir," replied
the porter. "He is at this moment in audience of
my Lady the Queen."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was so glad to hear it. Then Guy had really
been created a Count! He must be in high favour.
One half of his prophecy was fulfilled. But what
about the other?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Pray you," said Amaury to the porter, "do my
Lord Count to wit that his brother, Sir Amaury de
Lusignan, and his sister, the Lady Elaine, are before
the gate."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I hardly know how I got through the next ten
minutes. Then came quick steps, a sound of speech,
a laugh, and then my curtains were pushed aside,
and the voice I loved best in all the world said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Lynette! Lynette, my darling!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Ay, it was my own Guy who came back to me.
Changed?—no, not really changed at all. A little
older; a little more bronzed; a little longer and
fuller in the beard:—that was all. But it was my
Guy, himself.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Come! jump out," he said, holding his hand,
"and let me present thee to the Lady Queen. I
long to see my Lynette the fairest ornament of her
Court. And how goes it with Monseigneur, our fair
father?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>So, talking all the way, I walked with Guy,
hand in hand, up the stairs, and into the very
bower of the imperial lady who bears the crown
of all the world, since it is the flower of all the
crowns.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I can assure thee," said Guy, "the Lady Queen
has often talked of thee, and is prepared to welcome
thee."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was a beautiful room, though small, decorated
with carved and fragrant cedar-work, and hung with
blue and gold. Round the walls were blue and gold
settles, and three curule chairs in the midst. There
were only three ladies there,—but I must describe them.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The Queen, who sat in one of the curule chairs,
was rather short and stout, with a pleasant, motherly
sort of look. She appeared to be between forty and
fifty years of age. Her daughter, the Lady Isabel,
who sat in another chair, busied with some
embroidery, was apparently about eighteen; but Guy told
me afterwards that she is only fifteen, for women
ripen early in these Eastern lands, and grow old fast.
She has luxuriant black hair and dark shining eyes.
On the settle was a damsel a little older than the
Princess, not quite so dark, nor so handsome. She,
as I afterwards found, was the Damoiselle Melisende
de Courtenay,[#] a distant relative of the King, who
dwells with the Princesses. Guy led me up to the
Queen.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] A fictitious person. Millicent is the
modern version of this old
Gothic name. It comes from Amala-suinde, and signifies
</span><em class="italics small">heavenly-wisdom</em><span class="small">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Madam," said he, "your Highness has heard me
often speak of my younger sister."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! the little Damoiselle Helena?"[#] replied the
Queen, smiling very kindly. "Be welcome, my
child. I have indeed heard much of you; this
brother of yours thinks nobody like you in the
world,—not even one, eh, Sir Count?—Isabel! I
desire thee to make much of the Damoiselle, and let
her feel herself at home. And,—Melisende! I pray
thee, give order for her lodging, and let her women
be seen to. Ah!—here comes another who will be
glad to be acquainted with you."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Helen is really quite distinct from Ellen,
of which lost Elaine is
the older form. The former is a Greek name
signifying </span><em class="italics small">attractive,
captivating</em><span class="small">. The latter is the feminine
of the Celtic name
Alain,—more generally written
Alan or Allan,—and means </span><em class="italics small">bright-haired</em><span class="small">.
Eleanor (it is a mistake as regards philology
to write Elinor) is simply
an amplification of Ellen by the addition
of "or," </span><em class="italics small">gold</em><span class="small">. It denotes,
therefore, </span><em class="italics small">hair bright as gold</em><span class="small">.
Annora is a corruption of Eleanor, and
Nora or Norah a further contraction of Annora.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I turned round to see at whom the Queen was
looking. An inner door of the chamber had just
opened, and two ladies were coming into the room.
At the one I scarcely looked, save to see that she
was old, and wore the garb of a nun. The other
fixed my eyes in an instant.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Shall I say she was beautiful? I do not know.
She has a face about which one never thinks whether
it is beautiful or not. She is so sweet, so sweet!
Her hair is long, of a glossy golden hue: her eyes
are dark grey, and all her soul shines out in them.
Her age seemed about twenty. And Guy said
behind me, in a whisper—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The Lady Sybil of Montferrat."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Something in Guy's tone made me glance suddenly
at his face. My heart felt for a moment as if it
stopped beating. The thing that I feared was come
upon me. The whole prophecy was fulfilled: the
beautiful lady stood before me. I should be first
with Guy no longer.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But I did not feel so grieved as I expected. And
when Lady Sybil put her arms round me, and kissed
me, and told me I should be her dear little
sister,—though I felt that matters must have gone very far
indeed, yet somehow I was almost glad that Guy
had found a heart to love him in this strange land.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The old nun proved to be a cousin of the Queen,
whom they call Lady Judith.[#] She is an eremitess,
and dwells in her cell in the very Palace itself. I
notice that Lady Sybil seems very fond of her.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] A fictitious person.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Damoiselle Melisende showed me a nice
bed-chamber, where I and my three women were to
lodge. I was very tired, and the Queen saw it, and
in her motherly way insisted on my having some
supper, and going to bed at once. So I did not even
wait to see Amaury again, and Guy went to look for
him and bring him up to the Queen. The King,
being a mesel, dwells alone in his own rooms, and
receives none. When Guy has to communicate with
him, he tells me that he talks with him through
a lattice, and a fire of aromatic woods burns between
them. But I can see that Guy is a very great
man here, and has the affairs of the State almost
in his own hands.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I said to Marguerite as I was undressing,—"Margot,
I think Count Guy is going to marry somebody."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, if it please my Damoiselle?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"From the way he looks at Lady Sybil, and—other
things."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Your gracious pardon, but—is he less loving
to my Damoiselle?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh no!—more loving and tender than ever,
if that be possible."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then it is all right," said Marguerite. "He
loves her."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What dost thou mean, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"When a man marries, my Damoiselle, one of
three things happens. Either he weds from policy,
and has no love for his lady; but Monseigneur
Guy loves to look at her, so it is not that. Or,
he loves himself, and she is merely a toy which
ministers to his pleasure. Then he would be
absorbed in himself and her, and not notice whether
any other were happy or unhappy. But if he loves
her, with that true, faithful, honourable love, which
is one of God's best gifts, then he will be courteous
and tender towards all women, because she is one.
And especially to his own relatives, being women,
who love him, he will be very loving indeed. That
is why I asked."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Margot, Margot!" I said, laughing. "Where
on earth dost thou find all thy queer notions?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Not all on earth, my Damoiselle. But, for
many of them, all that is wanted is just to keep
one's eyes open."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Are my eyes open, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle had better shut them now,"
replied Marguerite, a little drily. "She can open
them again to-morrow."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>So I went to sleep, and dreamed that Guy married
Lady Judith, in her nun's attire, and that I was
in great distress at the sacrilege, and could do
nothing to avert it.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="curious-notions"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER V.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">CURIOUS NOTIONS</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<dl class="docutils">
<br/><span class="small">"The soul, doubtless, is immortal—where a soul can be discerned."</span>
<br/><p class="first last pfirst"><span class="small">—ROBERT BROWNING.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>For the last few weeks, since we reached
Jerusalem, I have been very busy going about with the
Damoiselle Melisende, and sometimes the Lady
Isabel, with Amaury as escort. We have now
visited all the holy places within one day's
journey. I commanded Marguerite to attend me, for
it amuses me afterwards to hear what she has to say.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We went to the Church of Saint Mary, in the
Valley of Jehoshaphat, which is built in a round
form; and in it is the empty tomb in which our
Lady was buried. So some say, and that the angels
carried her body away in the night: but other some
say, that while the holy Apostles were carrying her
to her burial, the angels came down and bore her
away to Paradise. I asked Margot (as she always
listens) if she had heard Father Eudes read about it
from the holy Evangel: but she said he had never
read the story of that, at least in French. In this
church there is a stone in the wall, on which our
Lord knelt to pray on the night of His betrayal;
and on it is the impression of His knees, as if the
stone were wax. There is no roof to the church,
but by miraculous provision of the good God, the
rain never falls on it. Here also, our Lord's body,
when taken down from the cross, was wrapped and
anointed.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We also visited the Church of the Holy Ghost,
where is the marble table at which our Lord and
the holy Apostles ate the Last Supper, and they
received the Holy Sacrament at His hands. There
is also a chapel, with an altar whereat our Lord
heard mass sung by the angels; and here is kept
the vessel wherein our Lord washed the feet of His
disciples. All these are on Mount Zion.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Marguerite was very much interested in the vessel
in which the holy Apostles' feet were washed: but
she wanted to know which of them had put it by
and kept it so carefully. This, of course, I could not
tell her. Perhaps it was revealed by miracle that
this was the vessel.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, well!" she said, turning away at last, with
a contented face. "It does not much matter, if
only the good God wash our feet."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But that cannot be, Margot!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith was with us that day, and she laid
her hand on my arm.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Child," said she gently, "'if He wash thee not,
thou hast no part with Him.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And," said Marguerite, "my Lady will pardon
me,—if He wash us, we have part with Him."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ay," answered Lady Judith. "'Heirs of God,
joint-heirs with Christ.' Thou knowest it, my
sister?—thou hast washed? Ay, 'we believers enter
into rest.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wondered what they were talking about. Lady
Judith—of the Cæsars' purple blood, and born in a
palace at Constantinople; and old Marguerite,—a
villein, born in a hovel in Poitou,—marvel to
relate! they understood each other perfectly. They have
seemed quite friendly ever since. It can hardly be
because they are both old. There must be some
mystery. I do not understand it at all.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Another day, we went to the Church of the
Ascension, which is on the summit of Mount Olivet.
This also has an open roof. When our Lord
ascended, He left the impression of His feet in the
dust; and though palmers are constantly carrying
the holy dust away by basketsful, yet the
impression never changes. This seemed to me so
wonderful that I told Marguerite, expecting that it would
very much astonish her. But she did not seem to
think much about it. Her mind was full of something else.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, my Damoiselle," she said, "they did well
that built this church, and put no roof on it. For
He is not here; He is gone up. And He will come
again. Thank God! He will come again. 'This
same Jesus'—the same that wore the crown of
thorns, and endured the agony of the cross,—the
same that said 'Weep not' to the bereaved mother,
and 'Go in peace' to the woman that was a sinner—the
very same, Himself, and none other. I marvel
if it will be just here! I would like to live and die
here, if it were."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Margot!" said I, laughing, "thou dost not
fancy it will be while thou art alive?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Only the good God knows that," she said, still
looking up intently through the roof of the church,—or
where the roof should have been—into the sky.
"But I would it might. If I could find it in my
heart to envy any mortal creature, it would be them
who shall look up, maybe with eyes dimmed by
tears, and see Him coming!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I cannot comprehend thee, Margot," said I. "I
think it would be just dreadful. I can hardly
imagine a greater shock."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Suppose, at this moment, my Damoiselle were
to look behind her, and see Monseigneur Count Guy
standing there, smiling on her,—would she think it
a dreadful shock?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Margot! How can the two be compared?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Only love can compare them," answered the old
woman softly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Marguerite! Dost thou—canst thou—love our
Lord as much as I love Guy? It is not possible!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"A thousand times more, my Damoiselle. Your
Nobility, I know, loves Monseigneur very dearly;
yet you have other interests apart from him. I
have no interest apart from my Lord. All my
griefs, all my joys, I take to Him; and until He has
laid His hand on them and blessed them, I can
neither endure the one nor enjoy the other."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wonder if Lady Judith feels like that! I
should like to ask her, if I could take the liberty.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Marguerite was looking up again into the sky.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Only think what it will be!" she said. "To
look up from the cradle of your dying child, with
the anguish of helplessness pressing tight upon your
heart—and see Him! To look up from your own
sick bed, faint and weary beyond measure—and see
Him! From the bitter sense of sin and failure—from
cruel words and unkind looks—from loneliness
and desolation—from hunger and cold and
homelessness—to look up, and see Him! There will be
some suffering all these things when He comes.
Oh, why are His chariot-wheels so long in coming?
Does not He long for it even more than we?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was silent. She looked—this old villein
woman—almost like one inspired.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"He knows!" she added softly. "He knows. He
can wait. Then we can. Surely I come quickly.
Amen. Come, Lord Jesus!"'</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Amaury called me, and I left her there.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>He wanted to creep through the columns, and
wished me to try first, as I am slimmer than he. I
managed it pretty well,—so now all my sins are
remitted, and I do feel so good and nice! Lady
Isabel could hardly do it; and Amaury, who has
been growing fatter of late, could not get through
at all. He was much disappointed, and very cross
in consequence. Damoiselle Melisende would not
try. She said, laughing, that she was quite sure
she could not push through, and she must get her
sins forgiven some other way. But she mischievously
ran and fetched old Marguerite, and putting
on a grave face, proposed to her to try the feat.
Now I am quite certain Marguerite could never
have done it; for though she is not stout, she is a
large-built woman. But she looked at the place for
a moment, and then said to Melisende—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If the Damoiselle pleases, what will follow?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, thou wilt have all thy sins forgiven," said she.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I thank the Damoiselle," answered Marguerite,
and turned quietly away. "Then it would be to no
good, for my sins are forgiven."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What a strange old woman!" exclaimed Lady Isabel.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, Marguerite is very queer," said I. "She
amuses me exceedingly."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is she quite right in her head, do you think?"
demanded the Princess, eyeing Margot with rather a
doubtful expression.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I laughed, and Amaury said, "Oh yes, as bright
as a new besant. She is only comical."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then we went into the Church of Saint John,
where a piece of marble is kept on which our Lord
wrote when the heathen Jews desired to know His
judgment on a wicked woman. Marguerite seemed
puzzled with this. She said she had heard Father
Eudes read the story, and the holy Evangel said that
our Lord wrote on the ground. How did the
writing get on that marble?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh," said I, "the marble must have been down
below, and it pleased the good God that it should
receive the impress."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The good God can do all things," assented
Margot. "But—well, I am an ignorant woman."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Coming down, on the slope of Olivet, the place
is shown where our Lady appeared to Monseigneur
Saint Thomas, who refused to believe her assumption,
and gave him her girdle as a token of it. This
girdle is kept in an abbey in England, and is famous
for easing pain.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>That same afternoon, at the spice in the Queen's
presence-chamber, were Messire de Montluc and his
sons. And we fell in talk—I remember not how—upon
certain opinions of the schoolmen. Messire
Renaud would have it that nothing is, but all things
only seem to be.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nay, truly, Messire," said I, laughing; "I am
sure I am."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Pardon me—not at all!" he answered.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And that cedar-wood fire is," said Damoiselle
Melisende.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"By no means," replied Messire Renaud. "It
exists but in your fancy. There is no such thing as
matter—only mind. My imagination sees a fire
there: your imagination sees a fire:—but there is no
fire,—such a thing does not exist."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Put your finger into this fire which does not
exist, if you please, Messire," remarked the Queen,
who seemed much amused; "I expect you will
come to a different conclusion within five minutes."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I humbly crave your Highness' pardon. My
finger is an imagination. It does not really exist."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And the pain of the burn—would that be imagination
also?" she inquired.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Undoubtedly, Lady," said he.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But what is to prevent your imagining that there
is no pain?" pursued Her Highness.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nothing," he answered. "If I did imagine that,
there would be none. There is no such thing as
matter. Mind—Soul—is the only existence, Lady."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What nonsense is the boy talking!" growled the
Baron.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But, I pray you, Messire Renaud," said I, "if I
do not exist, how does the idea that I do exist get
into my head?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"How do I have a head for it to get into?" added Guy.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Stuff and nonsensical rubbish!" said the Baron.
"Under leave of my Lady Queen,—lad, thou hast
lost thy senses. No such thing as matter, quotha!
Why, there is nothing but matter that is in reality.
What men call the soul is simply the brain. Give
over thy fanciful stuff!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"You are a Realist, Messire?" asked Guy.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Call me what name you will, Sir Count," returned
the Baron. "I am no such fool as yon lanky
lad of mine. I believe what I see and hear, and
there I begin and end. So does every wise man."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is it not a little odd," inquired Guy, "that
everybody should think all the wise men must believe as
he does?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Odd? No!" said the Baron. "Don't you think
so yourself, Sir Count?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy laughed. "But there is one thing I should
like to know," said he. "I have heard much of
Realists and Nominalists, but I never before met one
of either. I wish to ask each of you, Messires,—In
your system, what becomes of the soul after death?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nay, if there be no soul, what can become of
it?" put in Damoiselle Melisende.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Pure foy!" cried the Baron. "I concern myself
about nothing of that sort. Holy Church teaches
that the soul survives the body, and it were unseemly
to gainsay her teaching. But—ha! what know I?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"For me," said Messire Renaud, a little
grandiloquently, "I believe that death is simply the
dissolution of that which seems, and leaves only the pure
essence of that which is. The modicum of spirit—of
that essence—which I call my soul, will then be
absorbed into the great soul of the Universe—the
Unknowable, the Unknown."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"We have a name for that, Messire," said Guy
reverently. "We call it—God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Precisely," answered Messire Renaud. "You—we—holy
Church—personify this Unknowable
Essence, which is the fountain of all essence. The
parable—for a parable it is—is most beautiful. But
It—He—name it as you will—is none the less the
Unknown and the Unknowable."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The boy must have a fever, and the delirium
is on him," said the Baron. "Get a leech, lad. Let
out a little of that hot blood which mystifies thy
foolish brains."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>There was silence for a minute, and it was broken
by the low, quiet voice of Lady Judith, who sat
next to the Lady Queen, with a spindle in her hand.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"'And this is life eternal, that they should </span><em class="italics">know
Thee</em><span>.'" She added no more.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Beautiful words, truly," responded Messire
Renaud. "But you will permit me to observe, Lady,
that they are—like all similar phrases—symbolical.
The soul that has risen the nearest to this ineffable
Essence—that is most free from the shell of that
which seems—may, in a certain typical sense, be said
to 'know' this Essence. Now there never was a soul
more free from the seeming than that of Him whom
we call our Lord. Accordingly, He tells us
that—employing one of the loveliest of all types—He
'knew the Father.' It is perfectly charming, to an
enlightened mind, to recognise the force, the beauty,
the hidden meaning, of these exquisite types."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Lad, what is the length of thine ears?" growled
the Baron. "What crouched ass crammed all this
nonsense into thee? 'Enlightened mind'—'exquisite
types'—'charming symbolism'! I am not
at all sure that I understand thee, thou exquisite
gander! But if I do, what thou meanest, put in
plain language, is simply that there is no God. Eh?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Fair Father, under your good leave, I would
choose other words. God—what we call God—is
the Unknowable Essence. Therefore, undoubtedly
there is God, and in a symbolic sense, He is the
Creator of all things, this Essence being the source
out of which all other essences are evolved.
Therefore, parabolically speaking"——</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I'll lay my stick about thy back, thou
parabolical mud-puddle!" cried the Baron. "Let me
be served up for Saladin's supper if I understand a
word of thy foolery! Art thou a true son of holy
Church or not? That is what I want to know."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Undoubtedly, fair Sir!" said Messire Renaud.
"God forbid that I should be a heretic! Our holy
Mother the Church has never banned the Nominalists."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then it is high time she did!" retorted the
Baron. "I reckon she thinks they will do nobody
much harm, because no mortal being can understand
them. But where, in the name of all the Seven
Wonders of the World, thou gattest such moonshine
sticking in thy brains, shoot me if I know. It was
not from my Lady, thy fair mother; and I am sure
it was not from me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Messire Renaud made no answer beyond a laugh,
and the Lady Queen quickly introduced a different
subject. I fancy she saw that the Baron was losing
his temper. But when Messire Renaud was about
to take leave, Lady Judith arose, as quietly as she
does everything, and glided to his side.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Fair Sir," she said gently, "I pray you, pardon
one word from an old woman. You know years
should teach wisdom."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Trust me, Lady, to listen with all respect," said
he courteously.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Fair Sir," she said, "when you stand face to face
with death, you will find </span><em class="italics">It</em><span> does not satisfy your
need. You will want </span><em class="italics">Him</em><span>. You are not a thing, but
a person. How can the thing produced be greater
than that which produces it?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Your pardon, fair Lady and holy Mother!"
interposed Messire Renaud quickly. "I do not object to
designate the Unknowable Essence as Him. Far
from it! I do but say, as the highest minds have
said,—We cannot know. It maybe Him, It, Them:—we
cannot know. We can but bow in illimitable
adoration, and strive to perfect, to purify and
enlighten, our minds, so that they shall grow nearer
and nearer to that ineffable Possibility."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>A very sad look passed over Lady Judith's face.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My son," she said, "'if the light that is in thee
be darkness, how great is that darkness!' These
are not my words, but His that died for thee."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And without another word, she glided back to
her seat.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Margot," said I, when she came to undress me,
"is my body or my soul me?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"To fall and bruise yourself, Damoiselle, would
tell you the one," said she; "and to receive some
news that grieved you bitterly would show you the
other."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Messire Renaud de Montluc says that only my
soul is me; and that my body does not exist at
all,—it only seems to be."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does he say the same of his own body?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh yes; of all."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wait till he has fleshed his maiden sword," said
Margot. "If he come into my Damoiselle's hands
for surgery[#] with a broken leg and a sword-cut on
the shoulder, let her ask him, when she has dressed
them, whether his body be himself or not."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] All ladies were taught surgery, and practised it,
at this date.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Oh, he says that pain is only imagination," said
I. "If he chose to imagine that he had no pain, it
would stop."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Very good," said Marguerite. "Then let him
set his broken leg with his beautiful imagination.
If he can cure his pain by imagining he has none,
what must he be if he do not?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, I know what I should think him. But
his father, the Baron de Montluc, will have it just
the opposite—that there is no soul, nor anything
but what we can see and hear."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah! they will both find out their mistakes
when they come to die," said Margot. "Poor blind
things! The good God grant that they may find
them out a little sooner."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I asked Guy if he did not think the Baron's
notion a very dangerous one. But while he said
"yes," he added that he thought Messire Renaud's
much more so.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is so much more difficult to disprove," said
he. "It may look more absurd on the surface, but
it is more subtle to deal with, and much more profound."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"They both look to me very silly," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I wish they were no worse," was Guy's answer.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>To-day we have been to the Church of the Nativity,
at Bethlehem. This is a little city, nearly
two leagues from Jerusalem, that is, half a day's
ride. The way thither is very fair, by pleasant
plains and woods. The city is long and narrow, and
well walled, and enclosed with good ditches on all
sides. Between the city and the church lies the
field Floridus, where of old time a certain maiden
was brought to the burning, being falsely accused.
But she, knowing her innocence, prayed to our Lord,
and He by miracle caused the lighted faggots to turn
into red roses, and the unlighted into white roses;
which were the first roses that were ever in the world.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The place where our Lord was born is near the
choir of the church, down sixteen steps, made of
marble and richly painted; and under the cloister,
down eighteen steps, is the charnel-house of the
holy Innocents. The tomb of Saint Jerome is
before the holy place. Here are kept a marble
table, on which our Lady ate with the three Kings
that came from the East to worship our Lord; and
the cistern into which the star fell that guided them.
The church, as is meet, is dedicated to our Lady.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Marguerite wanted to know if I were sure that
the table was marble. Because, she said, our Lady
was a poor woman—only imagine such a fancy!—but
she insisted upon it that she had heard Father
Eudes read something about it. As if the Queen
of Heaven, who was, moreover, Queen of the land,
could have been poor! I told Marguerite I was
sure she must be mistaken, for our Lady was a
Princess born.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That may be, of blood," said she; "but she
was poor. Our Lord Himself, when on earth, was
but a villein."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was dreadfully shocked.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Marguerite!" I cried. "What horrible sacrilege!
Art thou not afraid of the church falling on thee?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It would not alter that if it did," said she drily.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Our Lord a villein!" exclaimed I. "How is
such a thing possible? He was the King of Kings."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"He is the King of Kings," said Marguerite, so
reverently that I was sure she could mean no ill;
"and He was of the royal blood of Monseigneur
Saint David. That is the Evangel of the nobles.
But He was by station a villein, and wrought as a
carpenter, and had no house and no wealth. That
is the Evangel of the villeins. And the villeins need
their Evangel, Damoiselle; for they have nothing else."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could not tell what to answer. It is rather
puzzling. I suppose it is true that our Lord was
reputed the son of a carpenter; and he must have
wrought as such,—Monseigneur Saint Joseph, I
mean,—for the Lady de Montbeillard, who is fond
of picking up relics, has a splinter of wood from a
cabinet that he made. But I always thought that it
was to teach religious persons[#] a lesson of humility
and voluntary poverty. It could not be that He
was </span><em class="italics">poor</em><span>!</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] By this term a Romanist does not mean what
a Protestant does.
The only "religious persons," in the eyes of the former,
are priests or monks.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Then our Lady,—I have seen a scrap of her tunic,
and it was as fine stuff as it could be; and I have
heard, though I never saw it, that her wedding-ring
is set with gems. I said this to Marguerite. How
could our Lady be poor?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"All that may be," she replied, with quiet
perverseness. "But I know, for all that, Father Eudes
read that our Lord was born in a cratch, or laid in
one, because there was no room in the inn. And
they do not behave in that way to kings and nobles.
That is the lot of the villein. And He chose the
villein's lot; and I, a villein, have been giving Him
thanks for it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And nothing that I could say would disturb her
calm conviction.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Damoiselle Melisende told me some interesting
things as we rode back to the Holy City. As,—that
Jerusalem is very badly supplied with water,
and the villeins collect and drink only rain-water.
Of course this does not affect the nobles, who drink
wine. About two leagues from Jerusalem, towards
the north, is a little village called Jericho, where
the walls of the house of Madame Saint Rahab are
still standing. She was a great lady who received
into her house certain spies sent by Monseigneur
Saint Joshua, and hid them behind the arras. (Now,
there again!—if that stupid old Marguerite would
not have it that Madame Saint Rahab kept a
cabaret. How could a great lady keep a cabaret? I
wish she would give over listening, if it makes her
take such fancies.) Damoiselle Melisende also told
me that Adam, our first father, was buried in the
place where our Lord was crucified; and our Lord's
blood fell upon him, and he came to life again, and
so did many others. And Adam wept for his son
Abel one hundred years. Moreover, there is a rock
still standing in the place where the wicked Jews
had their Temple, which was in the holiest place
of all; and here our Lord was wont to repose whilst
His disciples confessed themselves to Him.[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] All these legends may be found in the
Travels of Sir John Mandeville.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Coming home, we passed by the Golden Gate,
which is the gate whereby our Lord entered the
Holy City on the ass, and the gate opened to Him
of its own accord. Damoiselle Melisende bade me
observe three marks in the stone where the ass had
set his feet. The marks I certainly saw, but I could
not have told that they were the print of an ass's
hoofs. I suppose I was not worthy to behold them
quite distinctly.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Guy called me to him this evening.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Little Lynette," he said, "I have something to
tell thee."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Let me spare thee the pains, Guy," answered I
mischievously. "Dost thou think I have no eyes?
I saw it the first night we came."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Saw what?" asked Guy, with an astonished look.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That thy beautiful lady had appeared," I replied.
"Thou art going to wed with Lady Sybil."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What fairy whispered it to thee, little witch?"
said Guy, laughing. "Thou art right, Lynette. The
King hath bestowed on me the regency of the
kingdom, and the hand of his fair sister. To-morrow,
in presence of the nobles, I am to be solemnly
appointed Regent: and a month hence, in the
Church of the Holy Sepulchre, I wed with the
Lady Sybil."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If thou art happy, Guy, I am very glad," said I;
and I said it honestly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Happy? I should think so!" cried he. "To
be Regent of the land of all lands! And she,
Lynette—she is a gem and a treasure."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am sure of that, Guy," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And now, my news is not finished, little sister,"
said he. "The King has given Amaury a wife."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, poor thing!—who is it?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy laughed till his eyes were full of tears.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Poor thing!—who?" said he. "Amaury or his bride?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, the bride, of course," said I. "Amaury won't
care a straw for her, and she will be worried out of
her life if she does not dress to please him."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Let us hope that she will, then," answered Guy,
still laughing. "It is the Damoiselle Eschine
d'Ibellin, daughter of Messire de Rames. Thou
dost not know her."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou?—what is she like?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, most women are like one another," said
Guy—(what a falsehood!). "Except my fair Lady,
and thee, little Lynette, and the Lady Clémence,
thy fair mother,—a woman is a woman, and that
is all."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, indeed!" said I, rather indignantly. "A
man is a man, I suppose, and that is all! Guy, I
am astonished at thee. If Amaury had said such
a thing, I should not have wondered."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Men are different, of course," answered Guy.
"But a woman's business is to look pretty and be
attractive. Everybody understands that. Nobody
expects a woman to be over wise or clever."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou hadst better be quiet, Guy, if thou dost
not want thine ears boxed," said I. "If that is not
a speech enough to vex any woman, I never heard
one. You men are the most aggravating creatures.
You seem to look upon us as a kind of pretty
animal, to be kept for a pet and plaything; and
if you are not too obtuse yourselves to find out
that your plaything occasionally shows signs of a
soul within it, you cry out, 'Look here! This
toy of mine is actually exhibiting scintillations of
something which really looks almost like human
intellect!' Let me tell you, Sir Count, we have
as much humanity, and sense, and individuality,
as yourselves; and rather more independence.
Pretty phrases, and courtly reverences, and professions
of servitude, may sound very well in your ears;
and of those you give us plenty. Does it never
occur to you that we should thank you a great
deal more for a little genuine respect and
consideration? We are </span><em class="italics">not</em><span> toys; we are not pet
animals; we are not pretty pictures. We are human
creatures with human feelings like yourselves. We
can put up with fewer compliments to our complexions,
if you please, and a little more realisation
of our separate consciences and intellects."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"'Ha, Lusignan!'" cried Guy, looking half ashamed
and half amused. "'Sainte Marguerite for Poitou!' Upon
my word, Lynette, I </span><em class="italics">have</em><span> had a lecture. I
shall not forget it in a hurry."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes," said I, "and thou feelest very much as
if Lady Isabel's pet monkey had opened its mouth,
and uttered some wise apothegms upon the rights
of apes. Not that thou hast an atom more respect
for the rights of apes in general, but that thou art
a little astonished and amused with that one ape
in particular."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy went off laughing: and I returned to my embroidery.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Really, I never did see any thing like these men.
"Nobody expects a woman to be wise," forsooth!
That is, of course, no man. A woman is nobody.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I do not believe that men like a woman to be wise.
They seem to take it as a personal insult—as though
every spark of intellect added to our brains left
theirs duller. And a woman's mission in life is, </span><em class="italics">of
course</em><span>, to please the men,—not to make the most
of herself as an individual human soul. That is
treason, usurpation, impertinence.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>They will see what they will see. </span><em class="italics">I</em><span> can live
without them. And I mean to do.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="the-perversity-of-people"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER VI.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">THE PERVERSITY OF PEOPLE</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"'Do one good'! Is it good, if I don't want it done?</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Now do let me grumble and groan:</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>It is all very well other folks should have fun;</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>But why can't they let me alone?"</span></div>
</div></div>
</div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Damoiselle Melisende and I have been busy all
morning in laying out dried herbs under the
superintendence of Lady Judith. The herbs of this land
are not like those of Poitou. There was cassia,—of
which one variety,[#] Lady Judith says, is taken
as medicine, to clear the system and purify the
blood,—and garlic, which they consider an antidote
to poison,—and the wild gourd,[#] which is medicine
for the liver,—and hyssop, spikenard, wormwood (a
cure for vertigo), and many others. Two curious
fruits they have here which I never heard of in
Poitou; the one is a dark, fleshy stone-fruit, very
nice indeed, which they call plums or damascenes;[#]
they grow chiefly at Damascus. The other grows
on trees around the Dead Sea, and is the apple of
Sodom, very lovely to the eye, but as soon as you
bite it, you find nothing but a mouthful of ashes. I
was so amused with this fruit that I brought some
home and showed them to Marguerite.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Senna.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] Colocynth.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] Introduced into Europe by the Crusaders.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Ah, the world is full of those!" she said, when
she had tried one, and found out what sort of thing
it was.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou art quite mistaken, Margot," said I.
"They are found but in this country, and only in
one particular spot."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Those that can be seen, very likely," said she.
"But the unseen fruit, my Damoiselle, grows all
over the world, and men and women are running
after it all their lives."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then I saw what she meant.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>They have no apples here at all; but citrons and
quinces, which are not unlike apples. The golden
citron[#] is a beautiful fruit, juicy and pleasant; and
Lady Judith says some people reckon it to be the
golden apples of the Hesperides, which were guarded
by dragons, and likewise the "apples of gold," of
which Monseigneur King Solomon speaks in Holy
Writ. There are almonds, and dates, and cucumbers,
and large, luscious figs, and grapes, and melons,
and mulberries, and several kinds of nuts, and olives,
and pomegranates. Quinces are here thought to
make children clever. They make no hay in this
country.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Oranges.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>As for their stuffs, there are new and beautiful
ones. Here they weave byssus,[#] and a very fine
transparent stuff called muslin. Crape comes from
Cyprus, and damask from Damascus, whence it is
named. But the fairest of all their stuffs is the
baudekyn, of which we have none in Europe,—especially
the golden baudekyn, which is like golden
samite. I have bought two lovely pieces for Alix,
the one gold-colour, the other blue.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Cotton.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Some very curious customs they have here, which
are not common in Europe. Instead of carrying
lanterns when one walks or rides at night, they hang
out lanterns in the streets, so that all are lighted
at once. It seems to me rather a good idea.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy has been telling us some strange things
about the Saracens. Of course I knew before that
they worship idols,[#] and deal in the black art; but
it seems that Saladin, when he marches, makes
known his approach by a dreadful machine produced
by means of magic, which roars louder than a lion,[#]
and strikes terror into every Christian ear that is so
unhappy as to be within hearing. This is, of course,
by the machinations of the Devil, since it is
impossible that any true Catholic could be frightened of
a Saracen otherwise.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] All mediæval Christians thought this.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] The first drum on record.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>We are all very busy preparing for the weddings.
There are to be three, on three successive days. On
the Saturday, Amaury is to be married to Damoiselle
Eschine. (Poor thing!—how I pity her! I
would not marry Amaury to be Empress.) On the
Sunday, Guy weds with Lady Sybil. And on
Monday, Lady Isabel with Messire Homfroy de Tours.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I think Lady Sybil grows sweeter and sweeter.
I love her,—Oh, so much! She asked me if Guy
had told me the news. I said he had.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And dost thou like it, Lynette?" she asked shyly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Very much indeed," said I,—"if you love him, Lady."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Love him!" she said. And she covered her
face with her hands. "O Lynette, if thou knewest
how well! He is my first love. I was wedded to
my Lord of Montferrat when both of us were little
children; we never chose each other. I hope I did
my best to make him a good and dutiful wife; I
know I tried to do so. But I never knew what love
meant, as concerned him. Never, till </span><em class="italics">he</em><span> came
hither."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well, I am sure Guy loves her. But—shall I own
to having been the least bit disappointed with what
he said the other day about women?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I should not have cared if Amaury had said it.
I know he despises women—I have noticed that
brainless men always do—and I should not have
expected any thing better. But I did not look for
it from Guy. Several times in my life, dearly as I
love him, Guy has rather disappointed me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Why do people disappoint one in that way? Is
it that one sets up too high a standard, and they
fall short of it? I think I will ask Lady Judith
what she thinks. She has lived long enough to know.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I found an opportunity for a chat with Lady
Judith the very next day. We were busy broidering
Lady Sybil's wedding-dress, the super-tunic of which
is to be white baudekyn, diapered in gold, and
broidered with deep red roses. She wears white, on
account of being a widow. Lady Isabel will be in
gold-coloured baudekyn, and my new sister Eschine
in rose damask.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I have said nothing about Eschine, though she is
here. It was because I had not any thing to say.
Her eyes, hair, and complexion are of no colour in
particular; she is not beautiful—nor ugly: she is
not agreeable—nor disagreeable. She talks very
little. I feel absolutely indifferent to her. I should
think she would just do for Amaury.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well!—we were broidering the tunic, Lady
Judith doing the gold, and I the red; and Damoiselle
Melisende had been with us, working the green
leaves, but the Lady Queen sent for her, and she
went away. So Lady Judith and I were left alone.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother," said I, "give me leave to ask
you a question."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Surely, my child," said she; "any one thou wilt."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then, holy Mother,—do people ever disappoint
you? I mean, when you fancy you know a man,
does he never surprise you by some action which
you think unworthy of him, and which you would
not have expected from him?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith's first answer was an amused smile.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Who has been disappointing thee, Helena?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, nobody in particular," said I hastily; for
how could I accuse Guy? </span><em class="italics">Loyauté d'amour</em><span> forbid!
"But I mean in general."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Generals are made of particulars, Helena. But
I have not answered thy question. Yes, certainly
I have known such a feeling."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And, if it please you, holy Mother, what is the
reason of it?" said I. "Does one set up one's
standard of right, truth, and beauty, too high?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That is not possible, my child. I should rather
think thou hast set up the man too high."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh!" said I deprecatingly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Hast thou ever heard a saying, Helena, that 'a
man sees only that which he brings eyes to see'?
There is much truth in it. No man can understand
a character which is higher or broader than his
own. Admire it he may; enter into it, he cannot.
Human character is a very complicated thing."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then one may be too low to see a man's character?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"True; and one may be too high. A single eye
will never understand a double one.—Or they may
be too far asunder. A miser and a spendthrift are
both in the wrong, but neither of them can feel with
the other."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But where the temperaments are alike—?" said
I; for I always think Guy and I were cast in the
same mould.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"They never are quite alike," she replied. "As
in a shield borne by two brothers, there is always a
difference."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Pray you, holy Mother, do you think my brother
Guy and me alike?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Alike, yet very different," she said, and smiled.
"Cast from one mould,—yet he on the one side of
it, and thou on the other."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What do you think is the difference, holy
Mother? May I know?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wouldst thou like to know, Helena?" she said,
and smiled again.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, I think I can bear to hear my faults," said
I. "My pride is not of that sort."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No," she said; "but thou art very proud, little one."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Certainly," said I; "I am noble."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith looked suddenly up at me, with a
kind of tender look in her grey eyes, which are so
like, and yet so unlike, Lady Sybil's eyes.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Little maid, tell me one thing; is thine heart
at rest?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I have never been at rest, holy Mother. I do
not know how to get it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, dear heart; thy shoulder is not under the
yoke. Listen to the words of the Master—thy Lord
and mine. 'Take My yoke upon you, and learn of
Me; for I am meek and lowly in heart: and ye
shall find rest unto your souls.' Little maiden, wilt
thou not come and learn of Him? He is the only
one in Heaven or earth who will never disappoint thee."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Rather bitter tears were filling my eyes.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I don't know how!" I said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, dear heart; He knows </span><em class="italics">how</em><span>," said Lady
Judith. "Only tell Him thou art willing to learn
of Him—if thou art willing, Helena."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I have had some thoughts of going into the
cloister," said I. "But—I could not leave Guy."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dear child, canst thou not learn the lessons of
God, without going into the cloister?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I thought not," said I. "One cannot serve the
good God, and remain in the world,—can one?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, what is the world?" said Lady Judith.
"Walls will not shut it out. Its root is in thine
own heart, little one."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But—your pardon, holy Mother!—you yourself
have chosen the cloister."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nay, my child. I do not say I might not have
done so. But, in fact, it was chosen for me. This
veil has been upon my head, Helena, since I was five
years old."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yet you would not deny, holy Mother, that a
nun is better than a wife?"[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] I trust that I shall not be misunderstood,
or supposed to express
any approbation of conventual life.
At the date of this story, an
unmarried woman who was not a nun was a
phenomenon never seen, and
no woman who preferred single life had any choice
but to be a nun.
In these early times, also, nuns had more liberty,
and monasticism, as
well as religion in general, was free from some
corruptions introduced
in later years. The original nunneries were
simply houses where single
women could live together in comfort and safety,
and were always
seminaries of learning and charitable institutions.
Most of them were
very different places at the date of the dissolution.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Better? I am not so sure. Happier,—yes, I
think so."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Most people would say just the opposite, would
they not?" said I, laughing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Most men, and some women," she answered,
with a smile. "But Monseigneur Saint Paul thought
a woman happier who abode without marriage."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That is what I should like best: but how can I,
without being a nun? Perhaps, if I were an eremitess,
like your Nobility, I might still get leave from
my superiors to live with Guy."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is always Guy with thee," remarked Lady
Judith, smiling. "Does Guy never disappoint thee,
my child?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was on my lips to say, "Oh no!"—but I felt
my cheeks grow hot, and I did not quite like to tell
a downright lie. I am sure Lady Judith saw it, but
she kindly took no notice. However, at this point,
Damoiselle Melisende came back to her leaves, and
we began to talk of something else.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I asked Marguerite, at night, if people disappointed her.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Did my Damoiselle expect never to be disappointed?"
she answered, turning the question on
myself at once. (Old people do. They seem to
think one always means one's self, however careful
one may be.) "Then I am afraid she will be disappointed."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But why?" said I. "Why don't people do
right, as one expects them to do?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does one always know what is right? As to
why,—there are the world, the flesh, and the Devil,
against it; and if it were not for the grace of the
good God, any one of them would be more than enough."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The world, the flesh, and the Devil! The
world,—that is other people; and they do provoke one,
and make one do wrong, terribly, sometimes. But
the flesh,—why, that is me. I don't prevent
myself doing right. Marguerite must be mistaken.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then, what is grace? One hears a great deal
about it; but I never properly understood what it
was. It certainly is no gift that one can see and
handle. I suppose it must be something which the
good God puts into our minds; but what is it? I
will ask Lady Judith and Marguerite. Being old,
they seem to know things; and Marguerite has a
great deal of sense for a villein. Then, having been
my nurse, and always dwelt with nobles, she is not
quite like a common villein; though of course the
blood must remain the same.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I wonder what it is about Lady Isabel which I
do not like. I have been puzzling over it, and I
am no nearer. It feels to me as if there were
something slippery about her. She is very gracious and
affable, but I should never think of calling her
sweet—at least, not sweet like her sister. She
seems just the opposite of Lady Judith, who never
stops to think whether it is her place to do any
thing, but just does it because it wants doing. Lady
Isabel, on the contrary, seems to me to do only
what </span><em class="italics">she</em><span> wants doing. In some inexplicable
manner, she slides out of every thing which she does
not fancy; and yet she so manages it that one
never sees she is doing it at the time. I never
can fathom people of that sort. But I do not like
them.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>As for darling Lady Sybil, I love her better and
better every day. I do not wonder at Guy.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Of Guy himself I see very little. He is Regent of
the kingdom, and too busy to attend to any thing.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Marguerite," I said, "what is grace?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does my Damoiselle mean the grace of the good God?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I nodded.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I think it is help," she answered.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But what sort of help?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The sort we need at the minute."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But I do not quite understand," said I. "We
get grace when we receive the good Lord; but we
do not get help. Help for what?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If my Damoiselle does not feel that she needs
help, perhaps that is the reason why she does not
get it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, but we do get it in the holy mass. Can we
receive our Lord, and not receive grace?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Do we always, and all, receive our Lord?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Margot! Is not that heresy?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! I do not know. If it be truth, it can hardly be."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But does not holy Church teach, that whenever
we eat the holy bread, the presence of our Lord
comes down into our hearts?"[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Holy Church had gone no further than this in 1183. Bare
transubstantiation was not adopted by authority
till about thirty years later.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"I suppose He will come, if we want Him," said
Marguerite thoughtfully. "But scarcely, I should
think, if we ate that bread with our hearts set on
something else, and not caring whether He came
or not."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was rather afraid to pursue the question with
Margot, for I keep feeling afraid, every now and
then, when she says things of that sort, whether
she has not received some strange, heretical notion
from that man in sackcloth, who preached at the
Cross, at Lusignan. I cannot help fancying that
he must be one of those heretics who lately crept
into England, and King Henry the father had
them whipped and turned out of doors, forbidding
any man to receive them or give them aid. It
was a very bitter winter, and they soon perished of
hunger and cold, as I suppose such caitiffs ought.
Yet some of them were women; and I could not
but feel pity for the poor innocent babes that one
or two had in their arms. And the people who
saw them said they never spoke a bitter word,
but as soon as they understood their penalty, and
the punishment that would follow harbouring them,
they begged no more, but wandered up and down
the snowy streets in company, singing—only fancy,
singing! And first one and then another dropped
and died, and the rest heaped snow over them
with their hands, which was the only burial they
could give; and then they went on, singing,—always
singing. I asked Damoiselle Elisinde de
Ferrers,—it was she who told me,—what they sang.
She said they sang always the holy Psalter, or else
the Nativity Song of the angels,—"Glory to God
in the highest,—on earth peace towards men of
good-will."[#] And at last they were all dead under
the snow but one,—one poor old man, who survived
last. And he went on alone, singing. He tottered
out of the town,—I think it was Lincoln, but I am
not sure,—and as far as men's ears could follow,
they caught his thin, quavering voice, still
singing,—"Glory to God in the highest!" And the next
morning, they found him laid in a ditch, not
singing,—dead. But on his face was such a smile as a
saint might have worn at his martyrdom, and his
eyes gazing straight up into heaven, as if the angels
themselves had come down to help him to finish
his song.[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Vulgate version.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] This is the first persecution on record in England
of professing Christians, by professing Christians.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Oh, I cannot understand! If this is heresy and
wickedness, wherein lies the difference from truth
and holiness?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I must ask Lady Judith.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Oh dear, why </span><em class="italics">will</em><span> people?—I do think it is too
bad. I never thought of such a thing. If it had
been Amaury, now,—But that Guy, of all people
in all this world—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Come, I had better tell my story straight.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was coming down the long gallery after dinner,
to the bower of the Lady Queen, where I meant
to go on with my embroidery, and I thought I
might perhaps get a quiet talk with Lady Judith.
All at once I felt myself pulled back by one of my
sleeves, and I guessed directly who had caught me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, Guyon! I have not seen thee for an age!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And I want to see thee for a small age,"
answered he, laughing. "How many weddings are
there to be next week, Lynette?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, three," said I. "Thou wist as well as I."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What wouldst thou say to four?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wish them good fortune, so I am not the bride."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, but suppose thou wert?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Cry my eyes out, I think."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Hitherto Guy had spoken as if he were jesting.
Now he changed his tone.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Seriously, Elaine, I am thinking of it. Thou
knowest thou camest hither for that object."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"</span><em class="italics">I</em><span> came hither for that!" cried I in hot indignation.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou wert sent hither, then," answered Guy, half
laughing at my tone. "Do not be so hot, little one.
Monseigneur expects it, I can assure thee."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Art thou going to wed me against my will? O
Guy! I never thought it of thee!" exclaimed I
pitifully.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>For that was the bitterest drop—that Guy should
be willing to part with me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, no, my darling Lynette!" said Guy, taking
my hands in his. "Thou shalt not be wed against
thy will, I do assure thee. If thou dost not like
the knight I had chosen, I will never force him upon
thee. But it would be an excellent match,—and
of course I should be glad to see thee comfortably
settled. Thou mightest guess that."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Might I! That is just what I never should have
guessed. Do men ever understand women?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"'Settled,' Guy!" I said. "What dost thou
mean by 'settled'? What is there about me that
is unsettled?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, that is one of thy queer notions," answered
Guy. "Of course, no woman is considered settled
till she marries."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I should think it was just the most unsettling
thing in the world," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Lynette, thou wert born in the wrong age!"
said Guy. "I do not know in what age thou wert
born, but certainly not this."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And thou wouldst be glad to lose me, Guy!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nay, not glad to lose thee, little one"—I think
Guy saw that had hurt me—"but glad for thine
own sake. Why, Lynette, crying? For what, dear
foolish child?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could hardly have told him. Only the world
had gone dark and dreary. I know he never meant
to be unkind. Oh no! I suppose people don't,
generally. They do not find out that they have
hurt you, unless you scream. Nor perhaps then, if
they are making a noise themselves.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My dear little sister," said Guy again,—and very
lovingly he said it,—"why are all these tears? No
man shall marry thee without thy leave. I am
surprised. I thought women were always ready to
be married."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Ah, that was it. He did not understand!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And thou art not even curious to hear whom it
should have been?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What would that matter?" said I, trying to
crush back a few more hundreds of tears which
would have liked to come. "But tell me if thou
wilt."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Messire Tristan de Montluc," he said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It flashed on me all at once that Messire Tristan
had tried to take the bridle of my horse,[#] when we
came from the Church of the Nativity. I might
have guessed what was coming.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Then a tacit declaration of love to a lady.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Does that make any difference?" asked Guy, smiling.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No," said I; "none."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And the poor fellow is to break his heart?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I dare say it will piece again," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy laughed, and patted me on the shoulder.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Come, dry all those tears; there is nothing to
cry about. Farewell!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And away he went, whistling a troubadour song.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Nothing to cry about! Yes, that was all he knew.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I went to my own chamber, sent Bertrade out
of it, and finished my cry. Then I washed my face,
and when I thought all traces were gone, I went
down to my embroidery.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith was alone in the bower. She looked
up with her usual kind smile as I took the seat
opposite. But the smile gave way in an instant
to a graver look. Ah! she saw all was not right.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was silent, and went on working. But in a
minute, without any warning, Lady Judith was
softly singing. The words struck me.</span></p>
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"'Art thou weary, art thou languid,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Art thou sore distressed?</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>'Come to Me,' saith One, 'and, coming,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Be at rest.'</span></div>
</div></div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"'Hath He marks to lead me to Him,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>If He be my Guide?'</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>'In His feet and hands are wound-prints,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>And His side.'</span></div>
</div></div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"'Is there diadem, as monarch,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>That His brow adorns?'</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>'Yea, a crown, in very surety,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>But of thorns.'</span></div>
</div></div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"If I find Him, if I follow,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>What His guerdon here?'</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>'Many a sorrow, many a labour,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Many a tear.'</span></div>
</div></div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"'If I still hold closely to Him,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>What hath He at last?'</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>'Sorrow vanquished, labour ended,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Jordan past.'</span></div>
</div></div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"'If I ask Him to receive me,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Will He say me nay?'</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>'Not till earth, and not till heaven,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>Pass away.'"</span></div>
<div class="line"> </div>
</div></div>
</div>
</blockquote>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Oh! Your pardon, holy Mother, for interrupting
you," said Damoiselle Melisende, coming in
some haste; "but the Lady Queen sent me to ask
when the Lady Sybil's tunic will be finished."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Her leaves are finished, but not my roses, nor
Lady Judith's gold diapering. I felt much obliged
to her, for something in the hymn had so touched
me that the tears were very near my eyes again.
Lady Judith answered that she thought it would
be done to-morrow; and Melisende ran off again.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Hast thou heard that hymn before, Helena?"
said Lady Judith, busy with the diaper.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Never, holy Mother," said I, as well as I could.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Did it please thee now?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It brought the tears into my eyes," said I, not
sorry for the excuse.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"They had not far to come, had they, little one?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I looked up, and met her soft grey eyes. And—it
was very silly of me, but—I burst into tears
once more.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is always best to have a fit of weeping out,"
said she. "Thou wilt feel better for it, my child."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But I had—had it out—once," sobbed I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, not quite," answered Lady Judith. "There
was more to come, little one."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It seems so foolish," I said, wiping my eyes at
last. "I do not exactly know why I was crying."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Those tears are often bitter ones," said Lady
Judith. "For sometimes it means that we dare not
look and see why."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I thought that was rather my position. For
indeed the bitter ingredient in my pain at that
moment was one which I did not like to put into
words, even to myself.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was not that Guy did not love me. Oh no!
I knew he did. It was not even that I did not
stand first in his love. I was ready to yield that
place to Lady Sybil. Perhaps I should not have
been quite so ready had it been to any one else.
But—there was the sting—he did not love me as I
loved him. He could do without me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And I could have no comfort from sympathy.
Because, in the first place, the only person whose
sympathy would have been a comfort to me was
the very one who had distressed me; and in the
second place, I had a vague idea underlying my
grief that I had no business to feel any; that every
body (if they knew) would tell me I was
exceedingly silly—that it was only what I ought to have
expected—and all sorts of uncomfortable consolations
of that kind. Was I a foolish baby, crying
for the moon?—or was I a grand heroine of romance,
whose feelings were so exquisitely delicate and
sensitive that the common clay of which other people
were made could not be expected to understand
me? I could not tell.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh, why must we come out of that sweet old
world where we walked hand in hand, and were all
in all to each other? Why must we grow up, and
drift asunder, and never be the same to one another
any more?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Was I wicked?—or was I only miserable?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>About the last item at any rate there was no
doubt. I sat, thinking sad thoughts, and trying to
see my work through half-dimmed eyes, when Lady
Judith spoke again.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Helena," she said, "grief has two voices; and
many only hear the upper and louder one. I shall
be sorry to see thee miss that lower, stiller voice,
which is by far the more important of the two."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What do you mean, holy Mother?" I asked.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dear heart," she said, "the louder voice, which
all must hear, chants in a minor key, 'This world is
not your rest.' It is a sad, sad song, more especially
to those who have heard little of it before. But
many miss the soft, sweet music of the undertone,
which is,—'Come unto Me, and I will give you
rest.' Yet it is always there—if we will only listen."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But a thing which is done cannot be undone," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No," she answered. "It cannot. But can it
not be compensated? If thou lose a necklace of
gilt copper, and one give thee a gold carcanet
instead, hast thou really sustained any loss?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes!" I answered, almost astonished at my own
boldness. "If the copper carcanet were a love-gift
from the dead, what gold could make up to me for
that?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, my child!" she replied, with a quick change
in her tone. It was almost as if she had said,—"I
did not understand thee to mean </span><em class="italics">that</em><span>!"—"For
those losses of the heart there is but one remedy.
But there is one."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Costly and far-fetched, methinks!" said I, sighing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Costly, ay, in truth," she replied; "but far-fetched?
No. It is close to thee, if thou wilt but
stretch forth thine hand and grasp it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What, holy Mother?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Her voice sank to a low and very reverent tone.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"'Nevertheless, not as I will, but as Thou wilt.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I cannot!" I sobbed.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, thou couldst not," she said quietly, "until
thou lovest the will of Him that died for thee, better
than thou lovest the will of Hélène de Lusignan."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O holy Mother!" I cried. "I could not set up
my will against the good God!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Couldst thou not?" was all she said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Have I done that?" I faltered.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ask thine own conscience," replied Lady Judith.
"Dear child, He loved not His will when He came
down from Heaven, to do the will of God His
Father. That will was to save His Church. Little
Helena, was it to save thee?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"How can I know, holy Mother?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is worth knowing," she said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes, it is worth knowing," said I, "but how can
we know?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What wouldst thou give to know it? Not that it
can be bought: but what is it worth in thine eyes?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I thought, and thought, but I could not tell
wherewith to measure any thing so intangible.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wouldst thou give up having thine own will for
one year?" she asked.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I know not what might happen in it," said I,
with a rather frightened feeling.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Why, I might marry, or be ill, or die. Or Guy
might give over loving me altogether, in that year.
Oh, I could not, could not will that! And a year
is such a long, long time. No, I could not—for such
a time as that—let myself slip into nothing, as it
were.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Helena," she said, "suppose, at this moment,
God were to send an angel down to thee from
Heaven. Suppose he brought to thee a message
from God Himself, that if thou wouldst be content
to leave all things to His ordering for one year, and
to have no will at all in the matter, He would see
that nothing was done which should really harm
thee in the least. What wouldst thou say?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, then I should dare to leave it!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My child, if thou art of His redeemed, He has
said it—not for one short year, but for all thy life.
</span><em class="italics">If</em><span>, Helena!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah,—if!" I said with a sigh.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith wrought at her gold diapering, and
I at my roses, and we were both silent for a season.
Then the Lady Queen and the Lady Isabel came
in, and there was no further opportunity for quiet
conversation.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="a-little-cloud-out-of-the-sea"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER VII.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">A LITTLE CLOUD OUT OF THE SEA</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"Coming events cast their shadows before."</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>—CAMPBELL.</span></div>
</div></div>
</div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>It is Monday night, and I am,—Oh, so tired!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The three grand weddings are over. Very beautiful
sights they were; and very pleasant the feasts
and the dances; but all is done now, and if Messire
Renaud feels any doubt to-night about his body
being himself, I have none about mine.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Eschine made a capital bride, in the sense in
which a man would use the words. That is, she
looked very nice, and she stood like a statue. I do
not believe she had an idea in her head beyond
these: that she was going to be married, that it was
a very delightful thing, and that she must look well
and behave becomingly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Is that the sort of woman that men like? It is
the sort that some men seem to think all women are.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But Amaury! If ever I did see a creature more
absurd than he, I do not know who it was. He
fidgetted over Eschine's bridal dress precisely as if
he had been her milliner. At the very last minute,
the garland had to be altered because it did not
suit him.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Most charming of all the weddings was Guy's.
Dear Lady Sybil was so beautiful, and behaved so
perfectly, as I should judge of a bride's behaviour,—a
little soft moisture dimming her dark eyes, and
a little gentle tremulousness in her sweet lips. Her
dress was simply enchanting,—soft and white.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Perhaps Lady Isabel made the most splendid-looking
bride of the three; for her dress was gorgeous,
and while Lady Sybil's style of beauty is by
far the more artistic and poetical, Lady Isabel's is
certainly the more showy.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>So far as I could judge, the three brides
regarded their bridegrooms with very different eyes.
To Eschine, he was an accident of the rite; a
portion of the ceremony which it would spoil the show
to leave out. To Lady Isabel, he was a new horse,
just mounted, interesting to try, and a pleasant
triumph to subdue. But to Lady Sybil, he was the
sun and centre of all, and every thing deserved
attention just in proportion as it concerned him.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I almost hope that Eschine does not love Amaury,
for I feel sure she will be very unhappy if she do.
As to Messire Homfroy de Tours, I do not think
Lady Isabel will find him a pleasant charger. He
is any thing but spirited, and seems to me to have
a little of the mule about him—a creature who
would be given at times to taking the bit in his
teeth, and absolutely refusing to go a yard further.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And now it is all over,—the pageants, and the
feasts, and the dancing. And I cannot tell why I
am sad.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>How is it, or why is it, that after one has enjoyed
any thing very much, one always does feel sad?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I think, except to the bride and bridegroom, a
wedding is a very sorrowful thing. I suppose Guy
would say that was one of my queer notions. But
it looks to me so terribly like a funeral. There is
a bustle, and a show; and then you wake up, and
miss one out of your life. It is true, the one can
come back still: but does he come back to be yours
any more? I think the instances must be very,
very few in which it is so, and only where both are,
to you, very near and dear.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I think Marguerite saw I looked tired and sad.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"There have been light hearts to-day," she said;
"and there have been heavy ones. But the light
of to-day may be the heavy of to-morrow; and the
sorrow of to-night may turn to joy in the morning."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do feel sorrowful, Margot; but I do not know why."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle is weary. And all great joy
brings a dull, tired feeling after it. I suppose it is
the infirmity of earth. The angels do not feel so."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I should like to be an angel," said I. "It must
be so nice to fly!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And I," said Marguerite; "but not for that
reason. I should like to have no sin, and to see the
good God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh dear!" said I. "That is just what I should
not like. In the sense of never doing wrong, it
might be all very well: but I should not want never
to have any amusement, which I suppose thou
meanest: and seeing the good God would frighten
me dreadfully."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does my Damoiselle remember the time when
little Jacquot, Bertrade's brother, set fire to the
hay-rick by playing with lighted straws?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh yes, very well. Why, what has that to do
with it?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does she recollect how he shrieked and struggled,
when Robert and Pierre took him and carried him
into the hall, for Monseigneur himself to judge him
for his naughtiness?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh yes, Margot. I really felt sorry for the
child, he was so terrified; and yet it was half
ludicrous—Monseigneur did not even have him
whipped."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yet, if I remember rightly, my Damoiselle was
standing by Monseigneur's side at the very time;
and she did not look frightened in the least. Will
she allow her servant to ask why?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why should I, Margot? I had done nothing wrong."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And why is my Damoiselle more like Jacquot
than herself, when she comes to think of seeing the
good God?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah!—thou wouldst like me to say, Because I
have done wrong, I suppose."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes; but I think there was another reason as well."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What was that, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle is Monseigneur's own child.
She knows him. He loves her, and she knows it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But we are all children of the good God, Margot."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Will my Damoiselle pardon me? We are all
His creatures: not all His children. Oh no, no!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Margot!" said I suddenly, "didst thou note
that tall, dark, handsome knight, who stood on
Count Guy's left hand,—Count Raymond of Tripoli?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"He in the mantle lined with black sable, and
gold-barred scarlet hose?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That is the man I mean."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I saw him. Why, if it please my Damoiselle?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Didst thou like him?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle did not like him?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Marguerite is very fond of answering one question
by another.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I did not; and I could not tell why."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nor I. But I could."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then tell me, Margot."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle, every man has a mark upon his
brow which the good God and His angels can see.
But few men see it, and in some it is not easy to
see. Many foreheads look blank to our eyes. But
sooner or later, one of the two marks is certain to
shine forth—either the holy cross of our Lord, or the
badge of the great enemy, the star that fell from
heaven. And what I saw on that man's lofty
brow was not the cross of Christ, but the star of Satan."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Margot, thy queer fancies!" said I, laughing.
"Now tell me, prithee, on whose forehead, in this
house, thou seest the cross."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The Lady Judith," she answered without the
least hesitation; "and I think, the Lady Sybil.
Let my Damoiselle pardon me if I cannot name
any other, with certainty. I have weak eyes for
such sights. I have hope of Monseigneur Count
Guy."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Margot, Margot!" cried I. "Thou uncharitable
old creature, only three! What, not the Lady
Queen, nor the Lady Isabel, nor the holy Patriarch!
Oh, fie!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Let my Damoiselle pardon her servant. The
Lady Queen,—ah, I have no right to say. She
looks blank, to me. The cross may be there, and
I may be blind. But the Patriarch—no! and the
Lady Isabel—the good God forgive me if I sin, but
I believe I see the star on her."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And on me?" said I, laughing to hide a curious
sensation which I felt, much akin to mortification.
Yet what did old Marguerite's foolish fancies
matter?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was surprised to see her worn old eyes suddenly
fill with tears.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My sweet Damoiselle!" she said. "The good
God bring out the holy cross on the brow that I love
so well! But as yet,—if I speak at all, I must
speak truth—I have not seen it there."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could not make out why I did not like the
Count of Tripoli. He is a very handsome man,—even
my partial eyes must admit, handsomer than
Guy. But there is a strange look in his eyes, as if
you only saw the lid of a coffer, and beneath, inside
the coffer, there might be something dark and
dangerous. Guy says he is a splendid fellow; but Guy
always was given to making sudden friendships, and
to imagining all his friends to be angels until he
discovered they were men. I very much doubt the
angelic nature of Count Raymond. I do not like him.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But what a queer fancy this is of old Marguerite's—that
Satan puts marks on some people! Yet I
cannot help wishing she had not said that about me.
And I do not think it was very respectful. She
might have said something more civil, whatever she
thought. Marguerite always will speak just as she
thinks. That is like a villein. It would never do
for us nobles.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Guy has now been Regent of the Holy Land for
half a year. Some people seem to fancy that he is
rather too stern. Such a comical idea!—and of
Guy, of all people. I think I know how it is. Guy
is very impulsive in enterprise, and very impetuous
in pursuing it. And he sees that during the King's
illness every thing has gone wrong, and fallen into
disorder; and of course it will not do to let things
go on so. People must be governed and kept in
their places. Of course they must. Why, if there
were no order kept, the nobles and the villeins
would be all mixed up with each other, and some of
the more intelligent and ambitious of the villeins
might even begin to fancy themselves on a par with
the nobles. For there is a sort of intelligence in
some of those people, though it must be of quite a
different order from the intellect of the nobles. I
used to think villeins never were ambitious. But I
have learned lately that some of them do entertain
some such feeling. It must be a most dangerous
idea to get into a villein's head!—though of course,
right and proper enough for a noble. But I cannot
imagine why villeins cannot be contented with their
place. Did not Providence make them villeins?—and
if they have plenty of food, and clothing, and
shelter, and fire, and a good dance now and then on
the village green, and an extra holiday when the
Seigneur's daughter is married, or when his son
comes of age,—what can they possibly want more?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I said so to Marguerite.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, that is all the nobles know!" she answered,
quietly enough, but with some fire in the old eyes.
"They do not realise that we are men, just as they
are. God sent us into His world, with just as much,
body and soul, as He did them. We have intellects,
and hearts, and consciences, just like them. ('Just
like'—only fancy!) I trust the good God may not
have to teach it them through pain."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But they ought to be satisfied," said I. "I am
perfectly content with my place in the world. Why
are they not contented?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is easier to be content with velvet than duffle,"
said Marguerite more calmly. "It looks better, and
feels softer, too. If my Damoiselle were to try the
duffle for a day, perhaps she would complain that it
felt harsh."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"To me, very likely," said I. "But a villein would
not have a fine skin like mine."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The finest skin does not always cover the finest
feelings," said Marguerite in her dry way.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>What a very silly idea! Of course those people
cannot have such feelings as I have. It would be
quite absurd to think so.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I do think, however, that what vexed me most
of any thing, was that Amaury—that silly little
boy!—should take it into his head to lecture Guy on
the way he chose to govern. As if he could know
anything about it! Why, he is two whole years
younger than Guy. I told him so, feeling really
vexed at his impudence; and what should he say
but that I was seven years younger than he. I
know that, but I am a woman; and women have
always more sense than men. At least, I have
more sense than Amaury. I should be an idiot if
I had not.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I have made a discovery to-day which has
astonished me. Lady Judith has a whole Bible, and
Psalter too, of her own, not written in Latin, but
in her own tongue in which she was born,—that is,
Greek. And she says that a great part of the
Bible—all the holy Evangels, and the writings of
Messeigneurs the holy Apostles—were originally
written in Greek. I always thought that holy
Scripture had been written in Latin. I asked her
if Latin were not the language the holy angels
spoke, and our Lord, when He was upon earth.
She answered, that she did not think we knew what
language the holy angels spoke, and she should
doubt if it were any tongue spoken on earth: but
that the good God, and Messeigneurs the holy
Apostles, she had no doubt at all, spoke Greek. It
sounds very strange.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Isabel has had a violent quarrel with her
lord, and goes about with set lips and her head
erect, as if she were angry with every one.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I almost think Eschine improves upon acquaintance.
Not that I find her any cleverer than I
expected, but I think she is good-natured, and seems
to have no malice in her. If Amaury storms—as
he does sometimes—she just lets the whirlwind
blow over her, and never gives him a cross word. I
could not do that. I suppose that is why I admire
it in Eschine.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>A young nun came this morning to visit Lady
Judith—one of her own Order. I could not quite
understand their conversation. Sister Eudoxia—for
that is her name—struck me as being the
holiest religious person I have ever seen. She spoke
so beautifully, I thought, about the perfection one
could attain to in this life: how one's whole heart
and soul might be so permeated with God, that one
might pass through life without committing any
deed of sin, or thinking any evil thought. Not, of
course, that I could ever attain to such perfection
But it sounded very beautiful and holy.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was quite surprised to see how constrained, and
even cool, Lady Judith was. It was only yesterday
that she assented warmly to old Marguerite's
saying that no one who served God could love any
kind of sin. But with Sister Eudoxia—who spoke
so much more charmingly on the same subject—she
sat almost silent, and when she did speak, it
seemed to be rather in dissent than assent. It
puzzled me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>When Sister Eudoxia was gone, Lady Sybil said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, what happiness, if one could attain to the
perfection of living absolutely without sin!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"We shall," answered Lady Judith. "But it will
not be in this world."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But Sister Eudoxia says it might be."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, my poor Sister Eudoxia!" said Lady
Judith sadly. "She has taken up with a heresy
nearly as old as Christianity itself, and worse than
than that of Messire Renaud de Montluc, because
it has so much more truth in it. Ay, so much
mixture of truth, and so much apparent loveliness,
that it can be no wonder if it almost deceive the
very elect. Beware of being entangled in it, my
children."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Heresy, holy Mother!" cried Lady Sybil, with
a shocked look. "I thought I had never heard any
one ascribe more of the glory of our salvation to
God than she did. For she said that every thing
was done for us by the good Lord, and that even
our perfection was wrought by Him for us."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And not by Him in us," said Lady Judith.
"The very point of the heresy, my child. Eudoxia
sees no distinction between the righteousness done
for us, which is our ground of justification before
God, and the holiness wrought in us, which is our
conformity to His image. The first was finished
on the rood, eleven centuries ago: the second goes
on in the heart of every child of God, here and
now. She is one of those who, without intending
it, or even knowing that they do it, do yet sadly fail
to realise the work of the Holy Ghost.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But how much she spoke of the blessed Spirit!"
objected Lady Sybil.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My daughter," said Lady Judith, with a smile,
"hast thou not yet found out the difference between
names and things? There are many men who
worship God most devoutly, but it is a God they
have made to themselves. Every man on earth is
ready to love and serve God with his whole heart,—if
he may set up God after his own pattern. And
what that really means is, a God as like as possible
to himself: who will look with perfect complacency
on the darling sins which he cherishes, and may
then be allowed to condemn with the utmost sternness
all evil passions to which he is not addicted."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That sounds </span><em class="italics">very</em><span> shocking, holy Mother!" said
Lady Sybil.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"We are all liable to the temptation," replied
Lady Judith, "and are apt to slide into it ere we
know it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We all wrought for a little time in silence, when
Lady Sybil said, "What do you call that heresy,
holy Mother, into which you say that Sister
Eudoxia has fallen?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If thou wilt look into the vision of the Apostle,
blessed John, called the Apocalypse," answered
Lady Judith, "thou wilt see what Christ our Lord
calls it. 'This thou hast, that thou rejectest the
teaching of the Nicolaitanes, which I hate."'</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But I thought," said Lady Sybil, looking rather
surprised, "that those Nicolaitanes, who were
heretics in the early Church, held some very horrible
doctrines, and led extremely wicked lives? The
holy Patriarch was speaking of them, not long ago."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, my child," said Lady Judith, "men do not
leap, but grow, into great wickedness. Dost thou
not see how the doctrine works? First, it is
possible to live and do no sin. Secondly, </span><em class="italics">I</em><span> can live
and do no sin. Thirdly, I do live and not sin.
Lastly, when this point is reached,—Whatever my
spiritual instinct does not condemn—I being thus
perfect—cannot be sin. Therefore, I may do what
I please. If I lie, murder, steal—which would be
dreadful sins in another—they are no sins in me,
because of my perfection. And is this following
Christ?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Assuredly not! But does Sister Eudoxia really
imagine that?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh no!" responded Lady Judith. "She has
not reached that point. Comparatively few get so
far on the road as that. But that is whither the
road is leading them."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then what is the root of the heresy?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That which I believe lies at the root of every
heresy—rejecting God's Word, that we may keep
our own traditions. The stem may perhaps consist
of two things; the want of sufficient lowliness, and
the want of a right knowledge of sin. It is not
enough realised that a man's conscience, like all else
in him, has been injured by the fall, but conscience
is looked on as a heavenly judge, still in its original
purity. This, as thou mayest guess, leads to
depreciation of the Word of God, and exaltation of the
conscience over the Word. And also, it is not
properly seen that while a man lives, the flesh shall
live with him, and the flesh and the renewed spirit
must be in perpetual warfare to the end."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But we know——" said Lady Sybil,—and there
she paused.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"'We know'!" repeated Lady Judith, with a
smile. "Ah, my child, we think we know a great
deal. And we are like children playing on the
seashore, who fancy that they know all that is in the
sea, because they have scooped up a little sea-water
in their hands. There are heights and depths in
God's Word and in God's purposes, which you and
I have never reached yet,—which perhaps we shall
never reach. 'For as the heaven is high above the
earth, so are His ways higher than our ways, and
His thoughts than our thoughts.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was curious to know what Marguerite would
say: she always agrees so strangely with Lady
Judith, even when they have not talked the matter
over at all. So I said, when I went up to change
my dress—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Margot, dost thou commit sin?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle thinks me so perfect, then?"
said she, with a rather comical look.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could not help laughing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, not quite, when thou opposest my will,"
said I; "but dost thou know, there are some people
who say that they live without sin."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That may be, when to contradict the holy
Evangels is a mark of perfection," said Marguerite
drily.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, what hast thou heard about that in thy
listening, Margot?" said I, laughing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The first thing I heard perplexed me," said she.
"It was of Monseigneur Saint John, who said that
he that is born of God doth not commit sin: and it
troubled me sorely for a time, since I knew I did
sin, and feared lest I was therefore not born of God.
But one day, Father Eudes read again, from the
very same writing, that 'If any man sin, we have an
Advocate with the Father,' and likewise that if we
say we have no sin, we are liars. So then I thought,
Well! how is this? Monseigneur the holy Apostle
would not contradict himself. But still I could not
see how to reconcile them, though I thought and
thought, till my brain felt nearly cracked. And all
at once, Father Eudes read—thanks be to the good
God!—something from Monseigneur Saint Paul,
which put it all right."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What was that?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah! I could not get it by heart. It was too
difficult, and very long. But it was something like
this: that in a Christian man there are two hearts,
of which the one, which is from God, does not sin
at all; and the other, which is the evil heart born
in us, is always committing sin."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But, Margot, which of thy two hearts is thyself?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! I cannot answer such questions. The good
God will know."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But art thou sure those are not wicked people?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Certainly, no. Monseigneur Saint Paul said 'I'
and 'me' all through."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, but, Margot!—he could not have meant himself."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If he had not meant what he said, I should think
he would have mentioned it," said Marguerite in her
dry, quaint style.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, a holy Apostle is different, of course," said
I. "But it looks very odd to me, that anybody
living now should fancy he never does wrong."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, the poor soul!" said Marguerite. "The
good God knows better, if he do not."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="as-good-as-most-people"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER VIII.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">AS GOOD AS MOST PEOPLE</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span class="small">The best way to see Divine light is to put out your own candle.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>This morning the Lady Princess of Antioch visited
the Lady Queen, and remained for the day, taking
her departure only just before the gates were closed,
for she preferred to camp out at night. She is quite
young, and is a niece of the Lady Queen. After
she was gone, we were talking about her in the
bower, and from her we came to speak of the late
Princess, her lord's mother.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Pray do not talk of her!" said Lady Isabel.
"She made herself a bye-word by her shameless
behaviour."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Only thoughtless," remonstrated Lady Sybil
gently. "I never thought she deserved what was
said of her."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh no!—you never think anybody does," sneered
her sister. "I could not have associated with such
a woman. She must have known what was said of
her. I wonder that she was brazen enough to show
herself in public at all."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But think, Isabel! I do not believe she did
know. You know she was not at all clever."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"She was half-witted, or not much better," was
the answer. "Oh yes, I know that. But she must
have known."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not think she did!" said Lady Sybil earnestly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then she ought to have known!" sharply replied
Lady Isabel. "I wonder they did not shut her
up. She was a pest to society."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Isabel!" deprecated her sister. "She was
very good-natured."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Sybil, I never saw any one like you! You would
have found a good word for Judas Iscariot."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Hardly," said Lady Sybil, just as gently as
before. "But perhaps I might have helped finding
evil ones."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"There are pearl-gatherers and dirt-gatherers,"
quietly remarked Lady Judith, who had hitherto
listened in silence. "The latter have by far the
larger cargo, but the handful of the former outweighs
it in value."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What do you mean, holy Mother?" inquired
Lady Isabel, turning quickly to her—rather too
sharply, I thought, to be altogether respectful.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Only 'let her that thinketh she standeth, take
heed lest she fall,'" said Lady Judith, with a quiet
smile.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I?" said Lady Isabel, with a world of meaning
in her tone.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My child," was the reply, "they that undertake
to censure the cleanness of their neighbours' robes,
should be very careful to avoid any spot on the
purity of their own. Dost thou not remember our
Lord's saying about the mote and the beam?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well," said Lady Isabel, bringing her scissors
together with a good deal of snap, "I think that
those who associate with such people as the Princess
Constantia bring a reflection on their own characters.
Snow and soot do not go well together."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The soot defiles the snow," responded Lady
Judith. "But it does not affect the sunbeam."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not understand you," said Lady Isabel bluntly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Those who confide in their own strength and
goodness, Isabel, are like the snow,—very fair, until
sullied; but liable to be sullied by the least speck.
But those who take hold of God's strength, which is
Christ our Lord, are the sunbeam, a heavenly
emanation which cannot be sullied. Art thou the snow,
or the sunbeam, my child?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh dear! I cannot deal with tropes and figures,
in that style," answered she, rising. "And my work
is finished; I am going now."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I fancied she did not look very sorry for it.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Great events are happening. The Lord King,
finding his malady grows rather worse than better,
has resolved to abdicate, in favour of his nephew,
Lady Sybil's baby son. So to-morrow Beaudouin V. is
to be proclaimed throughout the Holy City, and
on the Day of Saint Edmund the King,[#] he will be
crowned in the Church of the Holy Sepulchre. They
say the Lord King was a very wise man before he
became a mesel; and he will still give counsel when
needed, the young King being but three years old.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Nov. 20.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I do not quite see what difference the abdication
will make. Guy must still remain Regent for
several years, and the only change is that he will
govern for his step-son instead of his brother-in-law.
And I feel a little jealous that Lady Sybil should
be passed by. She, not her son, is the next heir of
the crown. Why must she be the subject of her own
child, who ought to be hers? I really feel vexed
about it; and so does Guy, I am sure, though he
says nothing—at least to me. As to Lady Sybil
herself, she is so meek and gentle, that if a beggar in
the street were put over her head, I believe she
would kneel to do her homage without a cloud on
her sweet face.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>However, I felt at liberty to say what I thought
to Amaury, though I seldom do it without being
annoyed by his answer. And certainly I was now.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"She! She's a woman," said Messire Amaury.
"What does a woman know about governing?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What does a baby know?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, but he will be a man some day," answered
Amaury.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But Guy will govern in either case," I replied,
trying not to be angry with him.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>He is so silly, and he thinks himself so supremely
wise! I do believe, the more foolish people are, the
wiser they think themselves.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha!" said he. "Saving your presence, Damoiselle
Elaine, I am not so sure that Guy knows much
about it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Amaury, thou art an idiot!" cried I, quite
unable to bear any longer.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I believe thou hast told me that before," he
returned with provoking coolness.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I dashed away, for I knew I might as well talk
to Damoiselle Melisende's pet weasel.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I do not like the Count of Tripoli. The more
I see of him, the less I like him. And I do not
like his fawning professions of friendship for Guy.
Guy does not see through it a bit. I believe he
only means to use Guy as a ladder by which to
climb himself, and as soon as he is at the top, he
will kick the ladder down behind him.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Did I not say that Amaury was an idiot? And
is it not true? Here is our sister Eschine the
mother of a pretty little baby, and instead of being
thankful that Eschine and the infant are doing
well, there goes Amaury growling and grumbling
about the house because his child is a girl. Nay,
he does more, for he snarls at Eschine, as if it were
her fault, poor thing!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"She knows I wanted a boy!" he said this morning.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Men are such selfish simpletons!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>To see how coolly Eschine takes it is the strangest
thing of all.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I was afraid he would be disappointed," she
said calmly. "You see, men don't think much of
girls."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Men are all donkeys," said I, "and Amaury
deserves to be king of the donkeys."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Eschine seemed to think that very funny.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Come, Elaine, I cannot let thee say that of my
lord, and sit silent. And I think Messire Homfroy
de Tours quite as well qualified for the position."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah," said I, "but Lady Isabel keeps her curb
much tighter than thou. I really feel almost sorry
for him sometimes, when she treats him like a baby
before all the world."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"She may do that once too often," said Eschine.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Amaury means to call the baby Héloïse—for a
reason which would never have occurred to any
one but himself—because we have not had that
name in the family before. And Eschine smilingly
accepts it, as I believe she would Nebuchadnezzar
if he ordered her.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>To-day the little King was crowned in the Church
of the Holy Sepulchre, at noon; and in the evening
the Damoiselle Héloïse de Lusignan was baptized
into the Fold of Christ. The King was very good:
I think he inherits much of his mother's sweet
disposition. I cannot say as much for my small niece,
for she cried with all her heart when the holy
Patriarch took her in his arms; and he said it
showed that Satan must have taken strong possession
of her, and was very hard to dislodge. But no
sooner had the holy cross been signed on her, and
the holy Patriarch gave her back into the arms of
her nurse, than, by the power of our Lord, she was
quite another creature, and did not utter a single
cry. So wonderful and effectual a thing is the grace
of holy baptism!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Much effect it took on thee, then," growled
Amaury, to whom I said this; "for thou didst wait
until the water touched thy face, and then didst set
up such screams as never were heard from mortal
babe before."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What dost thou know about it?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! Don't I?" answered he provokingly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I have been amused to hear the different ideas of
various people, when they first see the baby. The
Lady Queen stroked its little face, and said
pitifully—"Ah, poor little child, thou art come into
a disagreeable world!" Lady Judith took it in
her arms, and after rocking it a little, she
said—"What possibilities lie hidden here!" Lady Sybil
said—"Little darling! what a treasure thou art!" Lady
Isabel's comment (for which I shall never
forgive her) was—"What an ugly little spectacle!
Are young babies no prettier?" Damoiselle
Melisende danced it up and down, and sang it a
lively nursery song. Guy (like a man) said, with an
amused look, "Well! that is a funny little article.
Héloïse?—that means 'hidden wisdom,' does it
not? Very much hidden just now, I should
think." Amaury (that stupid piece of goods!)—"Wretched
little creature! Do keep it from crying!" And
lastly, old Marguerite came to see her nursling's
nursling's nursling. I wondered what she would
say. She took it in her arms, and looked at it for
some time without speaking. And then she said
softly—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Little child! He that was once a little Child,
bless thee! And may He give thee what He sees
best. That will most likely be something different
from what we see."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Marguerite!" said I. "That may be an early
death."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That would be the best of all, my Damoiselle.[#] Ah! the
eyes of a noble maiden of seventeen years
see not so far as the eyes of a villein woman of
seventy. There are good things in this world—I
do not deny it. But the best thing is surely to be
safe above this world,—safe with the good Lord."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] It would have been well for Héloïse, who bears a spotted
reputation in history.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"I do not want to lose my baby, Margot," said
Eschine, with a rather sad smile.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah no, Dame, </span><em class="italics">you</em><span> do not," replied Marguerite,
answering the smile with a brighter one. "But if
the good Lord should call her, it is best to let her
rise and go to Him."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Again we hear something more of those strange
rumours, as though the people were not content
under Guy's government. But what does it signify?
They are only villeins. Yet villeins can insult
nobles, no doubt. Sister Eudoxia (who was here
again yesterday) says they actually talk of a
petition to the King, to entreat him to displace Guy,
and set some one else in his stead. The thought
of their presuming to have an idea on the question!
As if </span><em class="italics">they</em><span> could understand anything about
government! Discontented under Guy! my Guy! They
are nothing better than rebels. They ought to be
put down, and kept down.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The Lady Queen has received a letter from her
kindred at Byzantium, from which she hears that
the young Byzantine Cæsar, who is but a child,
has been wedded to a daughter of the Lord King
of France. Dame Agnes is her name, and she is
but eight years old.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wonder if it is very, very wicked to hate people?
Old Marguerite will have it that it is just as bad
as murder, and that the holy Evangel says so. I
am sure she must have listened wrong. For I do
hate Count Raymond of Tripoli. And I can't help
it. I must and will hate him. He has won Guy's
ear completely, and Guy sees through his eyes. I
cannot bear him, the fawning, handsome scoundrel—I
am sure he is one! They say, too, that he is
not over good to his wife, for I am sorry to say he
has a wife; I pity her, poor creature!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith asked me, when I repeated this, who
"they" were.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not know, holy Mother," said I; "every
body, I suppose."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I would not put too much faith in 'them,'
Helena," she said. "'They' often say a great deal
that is not true."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But one must attend to it, holy Mother!" I answered.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why?" replied she.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, because it would never do!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What would never do?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"To despise the opinion of society."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why?" she gently persisted.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Really, I found it rather difficult to say why.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Methinks, Helena, I have seen thee despise the
opinion of society, when it contradicted thy will.
Is it not more reasonable to despise it, when it
contradicts God's will?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother, I pray you, tell me—is that the
world?" said I. "Because my nurse, old
Marguerite, says, that Monseigneur Saint John bade us
beware of the world, and the flesh, as well as the
Devil: and I am not quite sure what it means,
except that the world is other people, and the flesh
is me. But how can I be inimical to my own salvation?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My child," said Lady Judith gently, "when some
duty is brought to thy remembrance, is there nothing
within thee which feels as if it rose up, and
said, 'Oh, but I do not want to do that!'—never,
Helena?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh yes! very often," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That is the flesh," said she. "And 'they that
are of Christ the flesh have crucified, with its
passions and its lusts.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh dear!" I exclaimed, almost involuntarily.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Very unpleasant, is it not?" said Lady Judith,
smiling. "Ah, dear child, the flesh takes long in
dying. Crucifixion is a very slow process; and
a very painful process. They that are not willing
to 'endure hardness' had better not enlist in the
army of Jesus Christ."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, that is what I always thought," said I;
"religious persons cannot be very happy. Of course,
it would not be right for them; they wait till the
next world. And yet—old Marguerite always seems
happy. I do not quite understand it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Child!" Lady Judith dropped her broidering,
and the deep, sweet grey eyes looked earnestly into
mine. "What dost thou know of happiness?
Helena, following Christ is not a hardship; it is a
luxury. The happiness—or rather the mirth—of
this world is often incompatible with it; but it is
because the one is so far above the other that it
extinguishes it, as the light of the sun extinguishes
the lamp. Yet who would prefer the lamp before
the sunlight? Tell me, Helena, hast thou any wish
to go to Heaven?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Certainly, holy Mother."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And what dost thou expect to find there? I
should be glad to know."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could hardly tell where to begin.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well," I said, after a moment's thought, "I
expect to fly, and to enjoy myself intensely; and never
to have another pain, nor shed a tear; and to see
all whom I love, and be always with them, and love
them and be loved by them for ever and ever. And
there will be all manner of delights and pleasures.
I cannot think of anything else."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And that is thy Heaven?" said Lady Judith,
with a smile in which I thought the chief
ingredient was tender compassion, though I could not
see why. "Ah, child, it would be no Heaven at all
to me. Verily, 'as a man thinketh in his heart, so
is he.' Pleasure, and ease, and earthly love—these
are thy treasures, Helena. 'For where thy treasure
is, there shall thine heart be.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But what is the matter with my Heaven?" said
I, feeling a little aggrieved.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, my child, thou hast left out the central
figure. What were a coronation if there were no
king? or a wedding where there were no bride?
Why, what was left would be equivalent to nothing.
Ask thine old nurse, and see if thy Heaven would
satisfy her. Ah, 'whom have we in Heaven but
</span><em class="italics">Thee</em><span>? and there is none upon earth that we desire
in comparison of Thee!' Old Marguerite understands
that. Dost thou, my maiden?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I shook my head. I felt too mortified to speak.
To have a poor, ignorant villein woman held
up to me, as knowing more than I knew, and
being happier than I, really was humiliating. Yet
I could not resent it from one so high as Lady
Judith.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith would have said more, I fancy, but
Melisende came in, and she quietly dropped the
matter, as she generally does if any third person
enters. But the next morning, as Marguerite was
dressing my hair, I asked her what her notion of
Heaven was.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Inside with the blessed Lord, and the Devil and
all the sins and evil things left outside," she said.
"Ah, it will be rest to be rid of evil; but it will be
glory to be with the Lord."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And the pleasures, and the flying, and all the
delightful things, Margot!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, yes, that will be very nice," she admitted.
"And to meet those whom we have lost—that will
be the very next best thing to seeing the good Lord."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Hast thou lost many whom thou hast loved, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, no—very few, compared with some. My
mother, and my husband, and my two children:—that
is all. I never knew my father, and I was an
only child. But it may be, the fewer one has to
love, the more one loves them."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"An only child!" said I. "But Perette calls thee aunt?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, yes, she is my husband's niece,—the same thing."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I think Marguerite seems to agree with Lady
Judith, though of course she does not express
herself so well.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And I cannot help wondering how they arrange
in Heaven. I suppose there will be thrones nearest
the good Lord for the kings and the princes who
will be there: and below that, velvet settles for the
nobles; and beneath again, the crowd of common
people. I should think that would be the arrangement.
Because, of course, no one could expect
them to mingle all together. That would be really
shocking.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Yet I cannot altogether make it out. If Messeigneurs
the holy Apostles were originally fishermen,
and worked for their living—it is very queer. I do
not understand it. But I suppose the holy angels
will take care to put it right, and have a proper
barrier between the Apostles and the nobles, and the
poor villeins, who are admitted of special grace,
through their own good deeds, and the
super-abundant merits of the holy saints.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>In the afternoon, when Guy was in audience of
the Lord King and the Lady Queen, and Lady
Isabel and Melisende were riding forth, with
Messire Homfroy and Amaury as their cavaliers,
I found Lady Judith and Lady Sybil busy spinning,
and I brought my broidery and sat down with them.
We did not talk much for a while,—only a few words
now and then: when all at once Lady Judith said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Helena, wilt thou try this needle for thy work?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I took the needle, and threaded it, and set to work
again: but I found to my surprise that I could not
get on at all. The needle would hardly go through
the silk, and it left an ugly hole when it did. Lady
Judith went on with her spinning for a few minutes,
but at length she looked up and said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, Helena, how dost thou like that needle?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Not at all, holy Mother, if it please you," said I,
"for I cannot get on with it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She selected another, and gave it me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, this is beautiful for broidery!" I said; "so
fine and sharp."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is the answer to a question thou wert asking
me yesterday," said Lady Judith, "and I gave thee
no reply. Canst thou guess what the question was?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could not, and said so. I did not remember
asking anything that had to do with needles, and I
never thought of any hidden meaning.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thy question was, What is the world?—and,
what harm does the world do to us? That needle
that I first gave thee has its point blunted. And
that is what the world does to a child of God. It
blunts his point."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not understand," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Little Helena," said Lady Judith, "before a
point can be blunted, there must be one to blunt.
Thou couldst not sew with a wooden post. So, before
the world can injure thy spiritual life, there must
be spiritual life to injure. There is no poison that
will harm a dead man."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But, holy Mother, are there two worlds?" said
I. "For religious persons give up the world."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My child, thine heart is a citadel which the foe
can never enter, unless there be a traitor within the
walls to open the postern gate. But there is such a
traitor, Helena; and he is always on the watch.
Be thou ever on the watch too. Yet another matter
stands first:—Who reigns in thy citadel? Hast
thou ever given thine heart to God, maiden?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Can I give my heart, holy Mother? It seems
to me that love is rather like a plant that grows,
than like a treasure that is given."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou art right: but the planting must be
sometime. Hast thou ever asked God to take thine
heart? For as a holy man of old hath said,—'If
Thou leave me to myself, I shall not give it Thee.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I shook my head. It all sounded strange to me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If the usurper is in the citadel, dear child, he
will hold the gates against the rightful King: and,
Helena, there are no traitors in His camp. Thou
art not a sword, nor a shield, which can do nothing
of itself; but a human creature with a living will,
which can choose either to open the gates to the
King, or to shut them against His trumpeter when
He sends thee summons to surrender. Nay, thou
not only canst choose; thou must: at this moment,
at every moment, thou art choosing. What message
hast thou sent back to thy rightful Lord, both by
right and purchase? Is it 'Come Thou, and reign
over me;' or is it, 'Go back to Thy place, for I will
have none of Thee'?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I would willingly not have answered: but I felt it
would be to fail in respect to Lady Judith's age and
position. I stammered out something about hoping
that I should make my salvation some time.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My child, didst thou ever do any thing at any
time but </span><em class="italics">now</em><span>?" said Lady Judith.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I suppose that is true; for it is always now, when
we actually come to do it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But, holy Mother, there is so much to give up if
one becomes religious!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What is there to give up, that thou couldst take
with thee into Heaven?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But there will be things in Heaven to compensate,"
said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And is there nothing in Christ to compensate?"
she replied, with a momentary flash in the grey eyes.
"What is Heaven but God? 'The City had no need
of the sun, for the glory of God did lighten her:'
'and temple I saw none in her, for the Lord God the
Almighty is Temple to her, and the Lamb.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Sybil seemed interested; but I must
confess that I thought the conversation had assumed a
very disagreeable tone; and I wondered how it was
that both Lady Judith and my old Marguerite spoke
to me as if they thought I did not serve God. It is
very strange, when I hear the holy mass sung every
morning, and I have only just offered another
neuvaine at the Holy Sepulchre. However, Easter
will soon be here, and I mean to be very attentive
to my devotions throughout the Holy Week, and
see if that will satisfy Lady Judith. I don't want her
to think ill of me. I like her too well for that,
though I do wish she would not talk as if she
fancied I did not serve God. I am sure I am quite
as good as most people, and that is saying a great
deal.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>No, it can never be wrong to hate people. It
can't be, and it shan't! And I just wish I could
roast that Count of Tripoli before the fire in the
Palace kitchen till he was done to a cinder. I am
white-hot angry; and like Jonah the Prophet, I do
well to be angry. The mean, fawning, sneaking,
interloping rascal! I knew what he meant by his
professions of love and friendship! Guy's eyes were
shut, but not mine. The wicked, cruel, abominable
scoundrel!—to climb up with Guy's help to within
an inch of the top where he sat, and then to leap the
inch and thrust him out of his seat! I cannot find
words ugly enough for him. I hate, hate, hate him!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>To have supplanted my Guy! After worming
himself into the confidence of the Lord King,
through Guy's friendship—ay, there is the sting!—to
have carried to the King all the complaints that
he heard against Guy, until he, poor helpless
Seigneur! (I don't feel nearly so vexed with him) really
was induced to believe Guy harsh and incapable,
and to take out of his hands the government of the
kingdom. And then he put in that serpent, that
false Judas, that courtly hypocrite—Oh dear! I
cannot find words to describe such wickedness—and
he is Regent of the Holy Land, and Guy must kneel
to him.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could cut him in slices, and enjoy doing it!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I am angry with Melisende, who can find nothing
to say but—"Ah, the fortune of Courts—one down
to-day, another up to-morrow." And I am almost
angry with Marguerite, who says softly—"Hush,
then, my Damoiselle! Is it not the good God?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>No, it is not. It is the Devil who sends sorrow
upon us, and makes us hate people, and makes
people be hateful. I am sure the good God never
made Count Raymond do such wicked things.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Instead of casting Adam and Eva out of Paradise,—Oh
why, why did the good God not cast out the Devil?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is my Damoiselle so much wiser than the
Lord?" quietly asks Marguerite.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I cannot understand it. The old cry comes up to
me again,—Oh, if I could know! Why cannot I
understand?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And then Lady Judith lays her soft hand on my
head, and says words which I know come from the
holy Evangel,—"'What I do, thou knowest not
now.'" Ay, I know not I must not know. I
can only stretch forth appealing hands into the
darkness, and feel nothing. Not like her and
Marguerite. They too stretch forth helpless hands into
the darkness, but they find God.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It must be a very different thing. Why cannot I
do the same? Is He not willing that I should find
Him too?—or am I not worthy?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I suppose it must be my fault. It seems as if
things were always one's own fault. But I do not
think they are any better on that account; especially
when you cannot make out where your fault lies.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy behaves like a saint. He does not see any
fault in Count Raymond: I believe he won't. Lady
Sybil, poor darling! looks very grieved; but not
one word of complaint can I get her to utter.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>As to Amaury, when I have quite finished slicing
up the Count, if he does not mind, I shall begin
with him. What does he say but—"Well, a great
deal of it is Guy's own fault. Why wasn't he more
careful? Surely, if he has any sense, he might
expect to be envied and supplanted, when he had
climbed to such a height."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If he has any sense!" Pretty well for Messire Amaury!</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="elaine-finds-more-than-she-expected"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER IX.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">ELAINE FINDS MORE THAN SHE EXPECTED</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"And when I know not what Thou dost,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>I'll wait the light above."</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>—DODDRIDGE.</span></div>
</div></div>
</div></div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Both Guy and Lady Sybil are in a state of the
highest ecstasy, and say that they are abundantly
recompensed for all their past disappointments.
And this is because they are disappointed just like
Amaury, but they bear it in as different a style as
possible. I think, if I were they, I should consider
I had more right to be troubled of the two, for little
Héloïse is a strong child enough, and is growing
almost pretty: while dear Lady Sybil's baby girl is
a little delicate thing, that the wind might blow
away. Of course I shall love her far better, just
because she is Guy's and Sybil's; and she crept
into the warmest corner of my heart when she
showed me her eyes—not Lady Sybil's gentle grey,
but those lovely flashing dark eyes of Guy's; the
most beautiful eyes, I think, that were ever seen.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Marguerite, is not she charming?" I cried.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, the little children always are," said the old
woman.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>(I don't agree with her—little children can be
great teases.) But Marguerite had more to say.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle sees they are yet innocent of
actual sin; therefore they are among the best things
in God's world. I may be wrong, but I think the
good God must have been the loveliest babe ever
seen. How I should have liked to be there!—if
the holy Mother would have allowed me to hold
Him in my arms!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, I suppose only the holiest saints would be
allowed to touch Him," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am not so sure, if my Damoiselle will pardon
me. She was no saint, surely, that crept into the
Pharisee's house to break the casting-bottle[#] on
His feet; yet the hardest word she had from Him
was 'Go in peace.' Ah, I thank the good God
that His bidding is not, 'Come unto Me, all ye that
are holy.' There are few of us would come, if it
were! But 'Come unto Me, all ye that are weary'—that
takes us all in. For we are all weary some
time. The lot of a woman is a weary lot, at the
best."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Used to sprinkle perfumes.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Well, it may be, among the villeins," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle, I never saw more bitter tears
than those of the old Lady de Chatelherault—mother
of the Lady de Lusignan—when her fair-haired
boy was brought in to her in the bower, with
the green weeds in his long bright hair, and the
gold broidery of his velvet tunic tarnished by the
thick stagnant water. Early that morning he had
been dancing by her, with the love-light in his
beautiful blue eyes; and now, when the dusk fell,
they laid him down at her feet, drowned and dead,
with the light gone out of the blue eyes for ever.
Ah, I have seen no little sorrow amongst men and
women in my seventy years!—but I never saw a
woman look, more than she did, as if she had lost
the light of life. The villeins have a hard lot, as
the good God knows; but all the sorrow of life is not
for the villeins—no, no!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>How oddly she puts things! I should never have
thought of supposing that the villeins had any
sorrow. A certain dull kind of coarse grief, or tired
feeling, perhaps, they may have at times, like
animals: but sorrow surely is a higher and finer thing,
and is reserved for the nobles. As to old Marguerite
herself, I never do quite think of her as a villein.
She has dwelt with nobles all her life, so to speak,
and is not of exactly the same common sort of stuff
that they are.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Yesterday afternoon Lady Sybil and I were alone
in the bower, and she had the baby in her arms.
The little creature is to be made a Christian on
Sunday. I asked her what name it was to have.
I expected her to say either Marie, which is the
Lady Queen's name, or Eustacie, the name of Guy's
mother. But she said neither. She answered,
"Agnes." And she spoke in that hushed, reverent
voice, in which one instinctively utters the names
of the beloved dead. I could not think whose it
could be. The name has never been in our House,
to my knowledge; and I was not aware of it in
Lady Sybil's line.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou not know whose name it is, Helena?"
asked Lady Sybil. I fancy she answered my look.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My dear lord has been very good to me," she
said. "He made not the least objection. It was
my mother's name, Helena."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh!" said I, enlightened. "Lady Sybil, do tell
me, can you remember the Lady Queen your mother?
How old were you when she died?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She did not answer me for an instant. When I
looked up, I saw tears dropping slowly on the
infant's robes.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"When she—died!" There was a moment's
pause. "Ay, there are more graves than men dig
in the churchyard! When she—</span><em class="italics">died</em><span>,—Helena, I
was six years old."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then you can remember her?" I said eagerly.
"Oh, I wish I could remember mine."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ay, memory may be intense bliss," she
answered; "or it may be terrible torture. I can
remember a fair face bent down over mine, soft,
brooding arms folded round me, loving kisses from
gentle lips. And then——O Helena, did my lord
tell thee she was dead? It was kind of him; for
he knows."[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] I trust it will not be imagined from this
that I think lightly of
"white lies." Romanists, as a rule,
are very lenient towards them.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Lady Sybil was sobbing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then she is not dead?" I said, in a low voice.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not know!" she replied. "No one knows.
She is dead to us. Oh, why, why does holy Church
permit such terrible things?—What am I saying?
May the good Lord pardon me if I speak against
Him!—But I cannot understand why it must be.
They had been wedded nearly ten years, Helena,—I
mean my parents,—when it was discovered that
they were within the prohibited degrees. Why
cannot dispensations be given when such things occur?
They knew nothing of it. Why must they be parted,
and she be driven into loneliness and obscurity, and
I—— Well, it was done. A decree of holy Church
parted them, and she went back to her people. We
have never heard another word about her. But
those who saw her depart from Jerusalem said she
seemed like one whose very heart was broken."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And she never came back?" I said pityingly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is it much wonder?" answered Lady Sybil,
in a low voice, rocking the child gently in her arms.
"It would have been much, I think, for the crowned
and anointed Queen of Jerusalem to steal into her
capital as Damoiselle de Courtenay. But it would
have been far more for the wife and mother to
come suing to her supplanter for a sight of her own
children. No, I cannot wonder that she never, never
came back."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was silent for a little while, then I said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Was the Lord King as grieved as she? I
cannot understand, if so, why they should not have
obtained a dispensation, and have been married over
again."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Sybil shook her head, and I saw another
tear drop on the baby's robe.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, Helena," she said, hardly above a whisper:
"I do not think he was. He had the opportunity of
allying himself with the Cæsars. And there are
men to whom a woman is a woman, and one woman
is just as good as another, or very nearly so. Do
men selling a horse stop to consider whether it will be
as happy with the new master as the old? They do
not care. And, very often, they cannot understand."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Ay, Amaury is one of that sort.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And you think—if she be alive—that she will
never come?" I asked.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I hope she might. But I think she will not.
Ah, how I have hoped it! Helena, hast thou
wondered how it is that nothing short of absolute
impossibility will suffer me to depute to another the
daily distribution of the dole at the postern gate to
those poor women that come for alms? Canst thou
not guess that amongst all the faces I look but for
one—for the one that might creep in there unrecognised
to look on me, and that must never, never go
away with a soreness at her heart, saying, 'She was
not there!' Every loaf that I give to a stranger, I
say, 'Pray for the soul of Agnes of Anjou!' And
then, if some day she should creep in among the
rest, and I should not know her—ah! but I think I
should, if it were only by the mother-hunger in the
eyes—but if she should, and hear that, and yet not
speak, she will say in her heart, 'Sybil loves me
yet.' And if she could only creep one step further,—'</span><em class="italics">God</em><span>
loves me yet!' For He does, Helena. Maybe He
has comforted her long ago: but if she should not
have found it out, and be still stretching forth numb
hands in the darkness—and if I could say it to her!
Now thou knowest why I call the babe by her name.
I know not where she is, nor indeed if she is on
earth. But He knows. And He may let her hear
it. If she come to know that I have called my child
by her name, she may not feel quite so lost and
lonely. I have no other way to say to her,—'I have
not forgotten thee; nor has God. I love thee; I
would fain help thee. He loves thee and is ready to
save thee.' Who can tell?—she </span><em class="italics">may</em><span> hear."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh dear, this is a bad world!" said I. "Why
are people so hard on each other? We are all
fellow-sinners, I suppose."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, Helena!" said Lady Sybil, with a sorrowful
smile. "Hast thou not found, dear, that the greater
sinner a man is himself, very generally, the harder
he will be on other sinners—especially when their
sins are of a different type from his own. The
holier a man is, the more he hates sin, and yet the
more tenderly will he deal with the sinner. For as
sin means going away from God, so holiness must
mean coming near God. And God is more merciful
than men to all who come to Him for mercy."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith came in while the last words were
being spoken.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I never can quite tell," said I, "what sin is.
Why should some things be sin, and other things
not be sin?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Go on, Helena," said Lady Judith, turning round
with a smile. "Why should so many things be
wrong, which I like, and so many things be right,
which I do not like?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, holy Mother, it is something like that,"
said I, laughing. "Will you please to tell me why?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Because, my child, thou hast inherited a sinful
nature."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But I do not like sin—as sin," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then temptation has no power over thee. Is it
so? Art thou never 'drawn away of thine own lust,
and enticed'?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, I am not perfect," said I. "I suppose
nobody expects to be."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yet without absolute perfection, Helena, thou
canst never enter Heaven."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O holy Mother!" cried I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Where art thou about to get it?" said she.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am sure I do not know!" I replied blankly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou shouldst know, my child," she responded
gently. "Think about it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I cannot guess what she means. I am sure I may
think about that for a year, and be no nearer when
I have done.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I have had a great pleasure to-day, in the shape
of a letter from Monseigneur our father, addressed
to Guy, but meant for us all three. He wrote about
six months after we set out; and I should hope
he has before now received my letter, which I sent
off on the first opportunity after our arrival in the
Holy City. Every body seems to be well, and Alix
has a baby boy, whom she means to call after
Monseigneur—Geoffrey. There is no other special news.
Level, he says, misses us sorely, and lies at my
door with his nose between his paws, as if he were
considering what it could all mean. I wonder
whether he thinks he comes to any satisfactory
solution.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The Lord King, I hear, has been more indisposed
for some days past. The Lady Queen is very
attentive to him. Lady Isabel and her lord have
gone through another tremendous quarrel,—about
what I do not know.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Early yesterday morning our sister Eschine's
second baby was announced, and in the afternoon
the holy Patriarch baptized it by Guy's name.
Amaury was in ecstasies with his boy; but alas! in
the evening the poor little thing fell into
convulsions, and barely lived to see the dawn of another
day. Amaury passed from the climax of triumph
to the depths of despair. He growled and snarled
at every body, and snapped at Eschine in particular,
as though he thought she had let her child die on
purpose to vex him. That she could be in as much
distress as himself, did not seem to occur to him.
If anything could have provoked me more than
Amaury's unreasonableness, it would have been the
calm patience with which Eschine took it. There
he stalked about, grumbling and growling.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why did you all let the child die?" he wanted
to know—as if we could have helped it. "There
is not one of you has any sense!"—as if he had!
"Alix's boy manages to live. She knows how to
treat him. Women are all idiots!" (Alix,
apparently, not being a woman.)</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Poor Eschine lay still, a few tears now and then
making their way down her white cheeks, and
meekly begging her lord and master's pardon for
what she had not done. When he was gone, she
said—I think to anticipate what she saw on the tip
of my tongue—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou knowest, Elaine dear, he is not angry with
me. Men do set such store by a son. It is only
natural he should be very much distressed."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She will persist in making excuses for him.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Distressed?—well!" said I. "But he does not
need to be so silly and angry. Natural!—well,
yes,—I think it is natural to Amaury to be an idiot.
I always did think so."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Lynette! don't, dear!" pleaded Eschine.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I am beginning to think I have been rather unjust
to Eschine when I said there was nothing in her;
but it has taken a long while to come out. And it
seems to come rather in the form of doing and
bearing, than of thinking and saying.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But that Amaury is a most profound donkey no
mortal man can doubt,—or at any rate, no mortal
woman.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I was awfully startled this morning when
Marguerite undrew my curtains, and told me that our
Lord King Beaudouin had been commanded to God.
It seems now that for some time past he has been
more ill than any one knew, except the Lady
Queen his stepmother. What that wicked Count
of Tripoli may have known, of course, I cannot say.
But I am sure he has had a hand in the late
King's will. The crown is left to the little King,
Beaudouin V., and our sweet Sybil is disinherited.
What that really means, I suppose, is that the Count
is jealous of Guy's influence over his Lady, and
imagines that he can sway the child better than
the mother.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>There are to be various changes in consequence
of the Lord King's death. The Lady Queen returns
to her own family at Byzantium. I do hope Lady
Judith will not go with her; but I am very much
afraid she may. Guy talks about retiring to his
city of Ascalon, but though I am sure Lady Sybil
will submit to his will, I can see she does not want
to leave her boy, though I do not believe she
distrusts that wicked Tripoli as I do.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I asked Marguerite if she did not feel very angry.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No," she said quietly. "Is my Damoiselle very
angry?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Indeed I am," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does my Damoiselle know what are the good
Lord's purposes for Monseigneur Count Guy? It
is more than old Marguerite does."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Of course not: but I see what has happened."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And not what will happen? Ah, that is not
seeing much."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But what can happen, to put things right again,
Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! Do I know, I? No better than Monseigneur
Saint Jacob, when his son, Monseigneur Saint
Joseph, sent for his little brother, and refused to
send the meal until he came. That is so beautiful
a history!—and so many times repeated in this
world. The poor old father!—he thought all these
things were against him. He did not know what
the good God was making ready for him. He did
not know! And the good God will never be
hurried. It is we that are in a hurry, poor children
of time,—we want every thing to happen to-day.
But He, who has eternity to work in, can afford to
let things take their time. My Damoiselle does not
know what old Helweh said to me yesterday."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No. Who is Helweh?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"She is an Arab woman who serves in the kitchen."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"A Paynim? O Marguerite! What can a Paynim
say worth hearing? Or is she a Christian?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If to be baptized is to be a Christian, as people
always say, then Helweh is a Christian. But if to
be a Christian is really to know and follow the
Lord Christ—and it seems to me as if the Evangel
always meant that—then I do not know. I am
afraid Helweh does not understand much about that."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, if she has been christened, she must be a
Christian," said I. "Well, what did she say?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"She said—'All things come to him who knows
how to wait.' It is a Saracen proverb."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, I do not believe it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, let my Damoiselle pardon me, but it is true."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well!" said I, half laughing, "then I suppose
I do not know how to wait."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not think my Damoiselle does," answered
Marguerite quietly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wilt thou teach me, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! It takes the good God to teach that."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I should not think it wanted much teaching."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Let my Damoiselle bear with her servant. The
good God has been teaching it to me for seventy
years, and I dare not make so bold as to say I have
learned it yet."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, Margot, thou art as quiet, and calm, and
patient as a stone."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah! not </span><em class="italics">here</em><span>," she said, laying her hand upon
her bosom. "Perhaps here,—and here,"—touching
her eyes and lips. "But down there,—no!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But for what, or for whom, art thou waiting,
Margot?" I asked, rather amused.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha!—it ought to be only whom. But it is too
often </span><em class="italics">what</em><span>. We are like the little children, waiting
for the father to come home, but thinking more of
the toys and bonbons he may bring than of himself.
And then there is another thing: before we can
learn to wait, we must learn to trust."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"To trust what, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I believe we all trust in something, if my
Damoiselle pleases. A great many trust in
themselves; and a great many more trust in
circumstances,—fate, or chance, or luck,—as they call it.
Some few trust in other human creatures; and their
waking is often the saddest of all. But it seems as
if the one thing we found it hardest to do was to
trust the good God. He has to drive us away, often,
from every other trust, before we will learn to trust
Him. Oh, how we must grieve His heart, when He
has done so much for us, and yet we </span><em class="italics">will not</em><span> trust Him!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wonder what she means. I feel as if I should
like to know, and could not tell how to begin.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The Lady Queen is gone back to her people.
And I am so glad—Lady Judith is not gone with
her. I was sadly afraid she would do. But
Melisende is gone, and Messire Renaud de
Montluc, for whom the Lady Queen trusts to obtain
some high position at the Court of the Byzantine
Cæsar.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I am not at all sorry that Messire Renaud is gone.
He made me feel uncomfortable whenever I looked
at him. I cannot well express my feeling in words;
but he gave me a sensation as if nothing stood on
any thing, and every thing was misty and uncertain.
I fancy some people like that sort of feeling. I
detest it. I like figures (though Amaury says it is a
very unladylike taste) because they are so definite
and certain. Two and two make four; and they
will make four, do what you please with them. No
twisting and turning will persuade them to be either
three or five. Now I like that—far better than
some arts, more interesting in themselves, such as
music, painting, or embroidery, of which people say,
"Yes, it is very fair,—very good,—but of course it
might be better." I like a thing that could not be
better. Guy says that is very short-sighted, and
argues a want of ambition in me. I do not quite
see that. If a thing be the best it can possibly be,
why should I want it to be better?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, but one wants an aim," says Guy; "one
must have a mark to shoot at. If I were besieging
a castle, and knew beforehand that I could not
possibly take it, it would deprive me of all energy and
object. There is nothing so devoid of interest as
doing something which leads to nothing, and is
worth nothing when done."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well," I say then, "I think if sieges and wars
were done away with, it would be no bad thing.
Just think what misery they cause."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But such an outcry comes upon me then!
Amaury informs me that he is incomparably astonished
at me. Is not war the grandest of all employments?
What on earth could the nobles do, if there
were no wars? Would I have them till the earth
like peasants, or read and write like monks, or sew
and dress wounds like women?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And Guy says, good-naturedly,—"Oh, one of
Elaine's curious notions. She never thinks like
other people."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But think," I say, "of the suffering which comes
from war—the bereft widows and fatherless children,
and human pain and sorrow. Does a woman weeping
over her husband's corpse think war grand, do
you suppose?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Stuff!" says Amaury. "Can't she get another?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>(Would he say, if Eschine were to die,—"Never
mind, I can get another"? Well, I should not
much wonder if he would!)</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Once, after a rather keen contest of this sort, I
asked old Marguerite if she liked war. I saw her
eyes kindle.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Damoiselle," she said, "my husband followed his
Seigneur to the war, and left me ill at home in my
cot. He had no power to choose, as my Damoiselle
must know. The night fell, and the Seigneur came
home with banners flying, and along the village
street there were bonfires and rejoicings for a great
victory. But my husband did not come. I rose
from my sick-bed, and wrapped myself in a sheepskin,
and went out to the fatal field. Like a candle
in the sunlight, the pain of the heart put out the pain
of the body. What I saw that night my Damoiselle
will not ask. It were not meet to rehearse in the
ears of a young noble lady. I do not know how I
bore it, only that I did bear—going from one to
another in the moonlight, and turning my lantern on
the dead still faces, ever looking for that face which
I feared to find. And at last I found him, my Piers,
the one love of my young life,—where the fight had
been the most terrible, and the dead lay thickest.
I knew that he had acquitted himself right well,
for his face was to the foe, and the broken shaft of his
Seigneur's pennon was still grasped tightly in his
hand. Damoiselle, there was no funeral pageant, no
table tomb, no herald's cry for him. Strangers'
hands buried him where he lay, as they might have
buried the Seigneur's horse, if need were. And there
were no white weeds and seclusion for me, his young
widow, who knelt by my baby's cradle, too miserable
for tears. But may be, in those halls where all souls
are alike before the King of Kings, the Voice from
the Throne said to him, 'Well done!' And the
Voice did verily say to me, 'Fear not! Come unto
Me, and I will give thee rest.'—Ah, my Damoiselle
knows now what her old nurse thinks of war."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh, why must there be such things?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"How else could a knight win his spurs?" indignantly
demands Amaury.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But surely, the winning of Amaury's spurs is not
the only thing of any consequence in the world.
Does the good God Himself take no account of
widows' tears and orphans' wails, if only the knights
win their spurs? Could not some other way be
contrived for the spurs, which would leave people alive
when it was finished?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, Elaine, don't be such a simpleton!" says
Amaury.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>So at last, as nobody else (except Marguerite, who
is nobody) seems to understand me, I ask Lady
Judith what she thinks.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My child," she says, "'He maketh wars to cease
unto the ends of the earth; He breaketh the bow,
and snappeth the spear in sunder, and burneth the
chariot in the fire.' 'The Father of the age to
come, the Prince of Peace!' It is one of His
fairest titles. But not till He comes, Helena. Till
then, earth will be red with the blood of her sons,
and moistened with the tears of her daughters. Let
us pray for His coming."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But holy Mother, that is ages off!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is it?" she made answer. "Has the Lord told
thee so much, Helena? Ah! it may be—I know
not, but I see nothing else to keep Him—it may be,
that if all the earth would come to Him to-day, He
would come to us to-morrow."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother, I do not know what you mean by
'coming' to Him!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dear Helena," she said gently, "thou wilt not
know, till thou art ready to come."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But I do not understand that," said I. "How
am I to get ready?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"'If any man thirst, let him come unto Me, and
drink.' 'If thou knewest the gift of God, thou
wouldst have asked of Him, and He would have
given to thee water of life.' Art thou not
athirst? and dost thou not know the gift of God, dear
maiden? Then ask Him to bestow on thee the
thirst, and the knowledge."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I really do not know whether it was right or
wrong, but that night, after I had finished my
Credo, and Paters, and the holy Angelical Salutation,
I ventured to say, in my own words,—"Fair
Father, Jesu Christ, give me what Lady Judith and
Marguerite talk about." I hope it was not very
wicked. I did so tremble! And I do not properly
know what this thing is, only that it seems to make
them happy; and why should I not be happy too?
I suppose the good God will know all about it.
And as He appears to be so condescending as to
listen to Marguerite, who is but a villein, surely He
will hear me, who am noble.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It is so odd that Amaury, who is such a simpleton
himself, should be perpetually calling me a simpleton.
I do think, the more foolish people are, the
more fond they are of exhorting others not to
be silly. It is very funny. But this world is a queer
place.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is, indeed, Lynette," says Guy, with mock
gravity, when I make the remark to him. "The
queerest place I have been in these thirty years."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>As Guy is scarcely twenty-seven, it may be
supposed I cannot help laughing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But there is another queer thing. It does really
seem as if villeins—at least some villeins—had
genuine feelings, just like us nobles. I have always
thought that it was because Marguerite had
associated so much with nobles, that she seemed a little
different—just as you might impart the rose-scent
to a handkerchief, if you shut it in a drawer with
rose-leaves. But I know she did not become my
mother's nurse until after her husband was dead:
so she must have had feelings before that, while
she was no better off than any other villein. It is
very incomprehensible. And I suppose, too, when
one comes to think about it, we are all children
of Adam and Eva. How did the difference come,
to begin with?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It is very difficult to tell how things began. It
is a great deal easier to see how they end. Who
would suppose, if men had never found out, that
the great river Danube, which rolls into the Black
Sea, almost like a sea itself in volume, came from
the meltings of the ice and snow upon the hills of
Switzerland?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha!" says Marguerite, when I repeat my
thoughts to her, "the great God is so rich that He
can bring the large things out of the small. We
others, we can only bring the small out of the large."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That sounds like spoiling things," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Men are very apt to spoil what they touch," she
answered. "The good Lord never touches anything
that He does not leave more beautiful. Has He
not blessed childhood and manhood, by becoming
Child and Man? Is not the earth fairer since He
dwelt on it? and the little children dearer, since
He took them in His arms and blessed them? Ah,
He might have cared for me, and felt with me, just
as much, if He had never been a Man: but it would
not have been the same thing to me. And He knew
it. When we love one very much, Damoiselle, we
love what he has touched: and if he touch us,
ourselves, it sends a delicious thrill through us. The
good Lord knew that when He took on Him our
nature, with all its sufferings and infirmities,—when
He touched us every where—in sorrow, and weariness,
and poverty, and hunger, and pain, and death.
We can suffer nothing which He has not suffered
first,—on which He has not laid His hand, and
blessed it for His chosen. Thanks be to His Name!
It is like honey sweetening everything. And the
things that are bitter and acid want the most
sweetening. So the good Lord chose poverty and
pain. Ease and riches are sweet of themselves. I
have heard Father Eudes read of one or two feasts
where He was: He blessed joy as well as sorrow,—perhaps
lest we should fancy that there was something
holy in pain and poverty in themselves, and
something wicked in being comfortable and happy.
Some people do think so, after all. But I have
heard Father Eudes read a great deal more of
funerals than feasts, where the blessed Lord was.
He seemed to go where people wanted comforting,
much oftener than where they were comfortable. He
knew that many more would sorrow than rejoice."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>What strange eyes Marguerite has! She can
look at nothing, but she sees the good God. And
the strangest thing is, that it seems to make her
happy. It always makes me miserable. To think
of God, when I am bright and joyous, is like
dropping a black curtain over the brightness. Why
cannot I be like Marguerite? I ought to be a great
deal happier than she. There is something wrong,
somewhere.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then of course there must be something holy in
poverty—voluntary poverty, that is—or why do
monks and nuns take the vow of poverty? I
suppose there is nothing holy in simply being poor,
like a villein. And if our Lord really were poor,
when He was on earth, that must have been
voluntary poverty. I said as much to Margot.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Damoiselle," said she, "every man who follows
our Lord must carry his cross. His own cross,—not
somebody else's. And that means, I think, the
cross which the good God lays on His shoulders.
The blessed Christ Himself did not cut His own
cross. But we others, we are very fond of cutting
our crosses for ourselves, instead of leaving the good
God to lay them on us. And we always cut them
of the wrong wood. We like them very light and
pretty, with plenty of carving and gilding. But
when the good Lord makes the crosses, He puts no
carving on them; and He often hews out very
rough and heavy ones. At least, He does so for
the strong. He makes them light, sometimes, for
the weak; but there is no gilding—only the pure
gold of His own smile, and that is not in the cross
itself, but in the sunlight which He sends upon it.
But my Damoiselle will find, when men sort out
the crosses, the strong walk away with the light
ones, and the rough and heavy fall to the weak.
The good Lord knows better than that."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But we don't all carry crosses, Margot," said I;
"only religious persons."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Marguerite shook her head decidedly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Damoiselle, all that learn of the good Lord must
bear the cross. He said so. 'If any man serve
Me, let him follow Me'—and again, 'If any man
will come after Me, let him deny himself, and take
up his cross, and follow Me.' Father Eudes read
them both. My Damoiselle sees—'</span><em class="italics">any</em><span> man.' That
must mean all men."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well, I cannot understand it I only feel more
puzzled than ever. I am sure it would not make
me happier to carry a heavy cross. Yet Lady
Judith and Marguerite are happy; I can see they
are. Religion and good people seem to be full of
contradictions. How is one to understand them?</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="preparing-for-the-struggle"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER X.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">PREPARING FOR THE STRUGGLE</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"He that hath a thousand friends hath not a friend to spare,</span></div>
<div class="line"><span>And he that hath one enemy shall find him every where."</span></div>
</div></div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I have thought, and thought, about Lady Judith's
question concerning perfection, and, as I expected,
I cannot see my way through it at all. And what
is more, I do not see how to reconcile it with what
she said herself of Sister Eudoxia. So this morning
I took the liberty of asking her what she meant.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith smiled, and replied, "Wert thou
puzzled, Helena?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes, holy Mother," said I, "very much."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am glad of it," she answered. "I wanted to
puzzle thee, and make thee think."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I have been thinking a great deal," I said, "but
I cannot think my way out of the labyrinth."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"We must take counsel of Holy Writ to find
our way out," answered Lady Judith; and she laid
her hand on her Greek Bible, which is a very
handsome book, bound in carved wood, and locked with
a golden clasp. She unlocked it with the little key
which hangs from her girdle, and said, "Now listen,
Helena. In the days when our Lord dwelt on
middle earth, there were certain men amongst the
Jews, called Pharisees, who were deemed exceedingly
holy persons. So exact were they in the
fulfilment of all duties, that they did not reckon
their tithes paid, unless they taxed the very
pot-herbs in their gardens. Yet our Lord said to His
disciples,—'If your righteousness surpass not that
of the Pharisees, ye shall not enter into the kingdom
of Heaven.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Likely enough," said I. "Surely any christened
man could easily be better than heathen Jews."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But He said more, Helena. 'Be ye then perfect,
even as your Father, He in the heavens, is
perfect.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Perfect as the good God is perfect!" I exclaimed.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That is our standard," she responded. "We are
not to rest short of that."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But we cannot! You yourself said it, holy
Mother, when we were talking of Sister Eudoxia."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I did, my child. Let us take two more
passages from Holy Writ, and see if they cast any
light upon it. 'The end of the law is Christ, unto
righteousness, to every believer.' 'And ye are in
Him complete.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not understand them, holy Mother."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I have heard thee speak, Helena, of thy favourite
legend of the two good knights of Greece. What
was it that Sir Pythias agreed to do for Sir Damon?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"To suffer death in his stead, if he did not return
home at the appointed time."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Suppose that Sir Pythias had suffered death
before Sir Damon's return, and that when Sir
Damon came back, the Lord King had put him to
death also: what wouldst thou call that?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, that would never have been just!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But why? Sir Damon had been sentenced to die."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes, but when another had died for him—Oh,
it would be cruelly unfair!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"In other words, Sir Damon would be reckoned
to have died, so far as the law was concerned, in the
person of his friend?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Exactly," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And this friend, remember, had voluntarily given
his life. Now, this is the point to which I want to
bring thee. The death of Sir Pythias would have
been reckoned to Sir Damon; and this last would
have been accounted to have paid the full penalty
to which he was sentenced, and to be thenceforward
a free and blameless man."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Of course," said I. "There could have been no
other result."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, Helena dear, this is what Christ has done
for all believers. His death is reckoned to them,
and they are thenceforward free and blameless—perfect
as He is perfect, 'complete in Him.' Not
in themselves, mind: never! In themselves they
are sinners to the last hour of life. But in Him,
on account of His atoning death and holy
obedience, God's holy law reckons them perfect as
Himself. So that, in one sense, they are perfect for
ever: in another sense, they are utterly imperfect
so long as they live. 'For by one offering He hath
perfected in perpetuity the hallowed ones.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But, holy Mother," I asked, "what do you
mean by 'in Him'?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My child," she answered, "I doubt if any but
God knows all that is meant by that deep word.
And what man knows cannot be told to another,—it
can only be felt. But it means light, and life,
and joy, Helena: the very light that God is, the
life of all the ages, the joy with which no stranger
intermeddleth. Only taste it, and see. No draught
of sin can be truly sweet to thee again, after one
drop of that wine of Heaven."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I am quite delighted to find that Messire Tristan
de Montluc, who has exasperated me for nearly
two years past by playing the broken-hearted lover,
has got his heart mended again. I was beginning
to entertain a desperate wish that he would take
the cowl, for it made me feel a perfect wretch
whenever I looked at him: and yet what could I have
said to Guy but what I did? I feel indescribably
relieved to hear that he is going after his brother
to Byzantium, and intensely delighted to find that
he is privately engaged to Melisende de Courtenay.
I believe she will make him a good wife (which I
never could have done): and it is such a comfort
to know that he has given over caring about me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It does seem not unlikely that we may have war.
There are flying rumours of Saladin's drawing
nearer. May the good God avert it! I believe
Amaury would tell me that I was a simpleton, if
he heard me say so.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The holy Patriarch Heraclius, and the Lord
Roger, Master of the Temple, have set forth on a
pilgrimage to the shrines of the West. They
intend to visit Compostella and Canterbury, amongst
others.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Count Raymond has been behaving rather better
lately—that is, we have not seen quite so much
of him.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>A letter from Alix came to hand last week; but
there is nothing of interest in it, except that every
one is well. She says her child begins to walk, and
can already prattle fluently: which called forth a
growl from Amaury, who wants to know why every
body's children thrive but his. It is not true, for
little Héloïse is really an engaging child, and has
excellent health.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah!—but then," says Guy, aside to me, with
arched eyebrows, "she is only a girl, poor little
good-for-nothing!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I know Guy does not think so, for he is devoted
to his little Agnes; and Héloïse is certainly the
prettier child. But neither of them is equal to the
little King, who is a most beautiful boy, and has the
quaintest sayings ever heard from a child.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>There, now! Did any body ever see any thing
like these men?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Messire Tristan set forth yesterday morning; and
what should he say to Guy (who told me, with his
eyes full of fun) but—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Damoiselle Elaine will find out that it does not
do to trifle with a man's heart. She will doubtless
be angry at my defection; but I have borne long
enough with her caprice, and have now transferred
my affections to one who can be truer!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Was ever mortal creature so misrepresented?
Why, the man must have thought I did not mean
what I said! My caprice, indeed! Trifle with a
man's heart! And as if affection could be
transferred at will from one person to another!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy seemed excessively amused with my exclamations.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What a conceited set of people you men must
be!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, we are rather a bad set," answered Guy,
laughing. "O little Elaine, thou art so funny!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Pray, what is there funny about me?" said I.
"And please to tell me, Guy, why men always seem
to fancy that women do not know their own minds?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, they don't," said Guy.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Only the silly ones, who have no minds to know,"
I replied.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Just so," answered he. "But those, thou seest,
are the generality of women. Rubies are scarce;
pebbles are common."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Only among women?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Possibly not," responded Guy, looking very much
amused. "Poor De Montluc appears to be a ruby
in his own eyes, and I presume he is only a pebble
in thine. Let us hope that Damoiselle Melisende
will consider him a gem of priceless value."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well, I am sure I have no objection to that.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But another idea occurs to me, which is by no
means so pleasant. Since other people are always
misunderstanding me, can it be possible that I am
constantly misunderstanding other people? I do
think I have misunderstood Eschine, and I am sorry
for it. I like her a great deal better now than I ever
expected to do, and I almost admire that quiet
endurance of hers—partly because I feel Amaury so
trying, and partly, I suspect, because I have so little
of the quality myself. But is it—can it be—possible
that I am misunderstanding Count Raymond?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I do not think so. Why should I think of a
beautiful serpent whenever I look at him? Why
should I feel a sensation, of which I cannot get rid,
as if that dark handsome face of his covered
something repugnant and perilous? It is not reason that
tells me this: it is something more like instinct. Is
it a true warning to beware of the man, or only a
foolish, baseless fancy, of which I ought to be
ashamed?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And—I cannot tell why—it has lately assumed a
more definite and dreadful form. A terror besets me
that he has some design on Lady Sybil. He knows
that she is the rightful heir of the crown: and
that—I do believe, through his machinations—she has been
set aside for her own son. If his wife were to die—the
holy saints defend it!—I believe him capable of
poisoning Guy, in order to marry Sybil, and to make
himself King of Jerusalem.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Am I very wicked, that such ideas come into my
head? Yet I do not know how to keep them out.
I do not invite them, yet they come. And in the
Count's manner to Lady Sybil there is a sort of
admiring, flattering deference, which I do not like to
see,—something quite different from his manner
towards her sister. I do not think she is conscious of
it, and I fancy Guy sees nothing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh dear, dear! There is something very wrong
in this world altogether. And I cannot see how it
is to be set right.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I asked Lady Judith this evening if she believed
in presentiments.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She answered, "Yes, when they come from God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah!—but how is one to know?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ask Him to remove the feeling, if it be not true."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I will try the plan. But if it should not answer?</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The heats of summer are so great, and the Holy
City is considered so very unhealthy, that the Regent
proposes to remove the Lord King to the city of
Acre, until the hot weather is over. Guy and Lady
Sybil are going to stay at Ascalon, a city which is
Guy's own, and close to the coast, though not
actually a sea-port like Acre. I cannot help being glad
to hear that there will be something like a week's
journey between Guy and Count Raymond. I may
be unjust, but—I do not know. I have offered
seven Paters every evening, that the good God might
take the thought out of my heart if it be wicked:
but it seems to me that it only grows stronger. I
told Lady Judith that her plan did not answer; that
is, that the presentiment did not go.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What is this thought which troubles thee, little
one?" said she.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother," said I, "do you ever utterly
mistrust and feel afraid of some particular person,
without precisely having a reason for doing so?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith laid down her work, and looked
earnestly at me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I generally have a reason, Helena. But I can
quite imagine—Who is it, my child? Do not fear
my repeating what thou mayest tell me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is the Lord Regent," said I. "I feel afraid of
him, as I might of a tamed tiger, lest the subdued
nature should break out. I do not believe in his
professions of friendship for Guy. And I do not at
all like his manner to Lady Sybil."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith's eyes were fixed on me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I did not know, Helena, how sharp thine eyes
were. Thou wert a child when thou camest here;
but I see thou art one no longer. So thou hast seen
that? I thought I was the only one."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It struck me with a sensation as of sickening fear,
to find that my suspicions were shared, and by Lady
Judith.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What is to be done?" I said in a whisper.
"Shall I speak to Guy?—or Lady Sybil?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith's uplifted hand said unmistakably, "No!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Watch," she said. "Watch and pray, and wait.
Oh, no speaking!—at least, not yet."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But till when?" I asked.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I should say, till you all return here—unless
something happen in the interim. But if thou dost
speak, little one—do not be surprised if nobody
believe thee. Very impulsive men, like thy brother,
rarely indulge suspicion or mistrust: and Sybil is
most unsuspicious. They are likely enough to
think thee fanciful and unjust."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It would be too bad!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It would be very probable," she responded.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother," said I, "what do you think he
aims at doing?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wanted to know, yet scarcely dared to ask, if
the same dread had occurred to her as to me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I think," she said unhesitatingly, "he aims at
making himself King, by marriage, either with Sybil
or with Isabel."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But he would have to murder his own wife and
the lady's husband!" cried I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No need, in the first case. The Lady Countess
suffers under some internal and incurable disorder,
which must be fatal sooner or later; it is only a
question of time. Her physicians think she may
live about two years, but not longer. And so long
as she lives, thy brother's life is safe."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But if she were to die—?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then it might be well to warn him. But we
know not, Helena, what may happen ere then. The
Lord reigneth, my child. It is best to put what we
love into His hands, and leave it there."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But how do I know what He would do with it?"
said I, fearfully.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"He knows. And that is enough for one who
knows Him."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is not enough for me," said I sadly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Because thou dost not know Him. Helena, art
thou as much afraid of the good God as of the Lord
Regent?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Not in the same way, of course, holy Mother," I
replied; "because I think the Lord Regent a wicked man."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, but to the same extent?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I don't know. I think so," said I, in a low voice.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Of Christ that died, and that intercedeth for us?
Afraid of Him, Helena?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O holy Mother, I don't know!" I said, bursting
into tears. "I am afraid it is so. And I cannot
help it. I cannot tell how to alter it. I want to be
more like you and old Marguerite; but I don't know
how to begin."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wilt thou not ask the Lord to show thee how to begin?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I have done: but He has not done it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith laid her hand on my bowed head, as
if to bless me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dear Helena," she said, "do not get the idea
into thine head that thou wilt have to persuade God
to save thee. He wishes it a great deal more than
thou. But He sometimes keeps his penitents waiting
in the dark basilica outside, to teach them some
lesson which they could not learn if they were
admitted at once into the lighted church. Trust
Him to let thee in as soon as the right time comes.
Only be sure not to get weary of knocking, and go away."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But what does He want to teach me, holy Mother?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not know, my child. He knows. He will
see to it that thou art taught the right lesson, if only
thou wilt have the patience to wait and learn."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does God teach every body patience?" said I, sighing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Indeed He does: and perhaps there is scarcely
a lesson which we are more slow to learn."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I shall be slow enough to learn that lesson, I am
sure!" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith smiled.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Inattentive children are generally those that
complain most of the hardness of their tasks," said
she.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We were both silent for a while, when Lady
Judith said quietly—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Helena, what is Christ our Lord to thee?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am not sure that I understand you, holy
Mother," said I. "Christ our Lord is God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Good; but what is He </span><em class="italics">to thee</em><span>?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I felt puzzled. I did not know that He was any
thing more to me than to every body else.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou not understand? Then tell me, what
is Monseigneur the Count of Ascalon to thee?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Guy?" asked I in a little surprise. "He is my
own dear brother—the dearest being to me in all the
world."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then that is something different from what he is
to others?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Of course!" I said rather indignantly. "Guy
could never be to strangers what he is to me!
Why, holy Mother, with all deference, you yourself
know that. He is not that to you."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou hast spoken the very truth," said she.
"But, Helena, that which he is to thee, and not to
me,—that dearest in all the world, ay, in all the
universe,—my child, Christ is that to me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I looked at her, and I saw the soft, radiant light
in the grey eyes: and I could not understand it.
Again that strange, mortified feeling took possession
of me. Lady Judith knew something I did not; she
had something I had not; and it was something
which made her happier than any thing had yet
made me. There was a gulf between us; and I was
on the rocky, barren side of it, and she on the one
waving with corn and verdant with pasture.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was not at all a pleasant feeling. And I could
see no bridge across the gulf.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"You are a religious person, holy Mother," said I.
"I suppose that makes the difference."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Yet I did not believe that, though I said so. Old
Marguerite was no nun; and she was on the flowery
side of that great gulf, as well as Lady Judith.
And if Lady Sybil were there also, she was no nun.
That was not the difference.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, maiden," was Lady Judith's quiet answer.
"Nor dost thou think so."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I hung my head, and felt more mortified than ever.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou want to know it, Helena?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother, so much!" I said, bursting into
tears. "You and Marguerite seem to me in a safe
walled garden, guarded with men and towers; and I
am outside in the open champaign, where the wolves
are and the robbers, and I do not know how to get
in to you. I have been round and round the walls,
and I can see no gate."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dear child;" said Lady Judith, "Jesus Christ is
the gate of the Garden of God. And He is not a
God afar off, but close by. Hast thou asked Him,
and doth it seem as though He would not hear?
Before thou say so much, make very sure that
nothing is stopping the way on thy side. There
is nothing but love, and wisdom, and faithfulness,
on His."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What can stop the way?" I said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Some form of self-love," she replied. "It has
as many heads as the hydra. Pride, indolence,
covetousness, passion—but above all, unbelief:
some sort of indulged sin. Thou must empty thine
heart, Helena, if Christ is to come in: or else He
will have to empty it for thee. And I advise thee
not to wait for that, for the process is very painful.
Yet I sometimes fear it will have to be the case
with thee."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well!" said I, "there is nobody in there but
Guy and Lady Sybil, and a few more a good deal
nearer the gate. Does our Lord want me to empty
my heart of them?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I thought that, of course, being religious, she
would say yes; and then I should respond that I
could not do it. But she said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dear, the one whom our Lord wants deposed
from the throne of thy heart is Hélène de Lusignan."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What, myself?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thyself," said Lady Judith, in the same quiet way.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I made an excuse to fetch some gold thread, for
I did not like that one bit. And when I came back,
things were even better than I hoped, for Lady
Isabel was in the room; and though Lady Judith
will talk of religious matters freely enough when
Lady Sybil is present, yet she never does so before
her sister.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith is entirely mistaken. I am quite
sure of that. I don't love me better than any one
else! I should think myself perfectly despicable.
Amaury does, I believe; but I don't. No, indeed!
She is quite mistaken. I scarcely think I shall be
quite so glad as I expected that Lady Judith is
going to stay in the Holy City. I do like her, but
I don't like her to say things of that kind.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Marguerite," I said, an hour or two later, "dost
thou think I love myself?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My Damoiselle does not think herself a fool,"
quietly answered the old woman.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, of course not," said I; "I know I have
brains. How can I help it? But dost thou think
I love myself,—better than I love other people?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"We all love either ourselves or the good God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But we can love both."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Marguerite shook her head. "Ha!—no. That
would be serving two masters. And the good God
Himself says no one can do that."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I did not like this much better. So, after I
finished my beads, I kissed the crucifix, and I said,—"Sir
God, show me whether I love myself." Because,—though
I do not like it,—yet, perhaps, if I
do, it is best to know it.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>We reached Ascalon a week ago, making three
short days' journey of it, so as not to over-fatigue
the little ones. Those of us who have come are
Guy and Lady Sybil, myself, Amaury and Eschine,
and the little girls, Agnes and Héloïse. I brought
Marguerite and Bertrade only to wait on me. Lady
Isabel prefers to stay at Hebron, which is only one
day's journey from the Holy City. She and Messire
Homfroy quarrelled violently about it, for he wished
to go to Acre, and wanted her to accompany him;
but in the end, as usual, she had her own way, and
he will go to Acre, and she to Hebron.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The night before we set forth, as I was passing
Lady Judith's door, her low voice said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Helena, my child, wilt thou come in here? I
want a word with thee."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>So I went into her cell, which is perfectly plain,
having no hangings of any sort, either to the
walls or the bed, only a bénitier[#] of red pottery,
and a bare wooden cross, affixed to the wall.
She invited me to sit on her bed, and then she said—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Holy water vessel.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"Helena, unless thou seest some very strong
reason, do not speak to the Count touching the
Count of Tripoli until we meet again."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, I thought I should not," said I. "But,
holy Mother, will you tell me why?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"We may be mistaken," she answered. "And,
if not, I am very doubtful whether it would not do
more harm than good. After all, dear maiden, the
shortest cut is round by Heaven. Whenever I feel
doubtful how far it is wise to speak, I like to lay
the matter before the Lord, and ask Him to speak
for me, if He sees good. He will make no mistake,
as I might: and He can tell secrets without doing
harm, as probably I should. It is the safest way,
Helena, and the surest."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I should be afraid!" said I. "But of course,
holy Mother, for you"——</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes," she said, answering my half-expressed
thought. "It is a hard matter to ask a favour of
a stranger, especially if he be a king. But where he
is thy father——Dost thou understand me, maiden?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Ay, only too well. Well enough to make me
feel sick at heart, as if the gulf between grew wider
than ever. Should I never find the bridge across?</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>We lead such a quiet, peaceful life here! Some
time ago, I should have called it dull; but I am
tired of pageants, and skirmishes, and quarrels,
and so it is rather a relief—for a little while.
Lady Sybil, I can see, enjoys it: she likes quiet.
Amaury fumes and frets. I believe Eschine likes
it, but won't say so, because she knows Amaury
does not. I never saw the equal of Eschine for
calm contentedness. "All right"—"never mind
it"—"it does not signify"—are the style of her stock
phrases when any thing goes wrong. And "Won't
it be all the same a hundred years hence?" That
is a favourite reflection with her.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh dear, Eschine!" I could not help saying
one day, "I do hate that pet phrase of thine. A
hundred years hence! That will be the year of
our Lord 1285. Why, thou and I will be nowhere
then."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nay, I suppose we shall be somewhere," was
Eschine's grave answer.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, well, don't moralise!" said I. "But thou
knowest, if we were always to look at things in
that style, nothing would ever signify any thing. It
makes me feel as queer as Messire Renaud's notions—as
if all the world, and I in it, had gone into a
jelly, and nothing was any thing."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Eschine laughed. But Eschine's laughter is always
quiet.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I think thou dost not quite understand me,
Elaine," said she. "I do not use such phrases of
things that do matter, but of those that do not. I
should not say such words respecting real troubles,
however small. But are there not a great many
events in life, of which you can make troubles or
not, as you choose? An ill-dressed dish,—a
disappointment about the colour of a tunic,—a
misunderstanding about the pattern of a trimming,—a cut
in one's finger,—and such as these,—is it not very
foolish to make one's self miserable about them?
What can be more silly than to spend half an hour
in fretting over an inconvenience which did not last
a quarter?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My dear Eschine, it sounds very grand!" said I.
"Why dost thou not teach Amaury to look at things
in that charming way? He frets over mistakes and
inconveniences far more than Guy and I do."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Eschine's smile had more patience than
amusement in it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"For the same reason, Elaine, that I do not teach
yonder crane to sing like a nightingale."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I can guess that parable. It would be mere waste
of time and labour.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Guy did not forget my birthday yesterday; he
gave me a beautiful coral necklace, which one knows
is good against poison. (I will take care to wear it
whenever Count Raymond is present.) Lady Sybil
gave me a lovely ring, set with an opal; and if I
were at Acre, and had a bay-leaf to wrap round it, I
would go into the Count's chamber invisible, and
listen to him. Eschine's gift was a silver pomander,
with a chain to hang it by. Amaury (just like
him!) forgot all about it till this morning, and then
gave me a very pretty gold filagree case, containing
the holy Evangel of Saint Luke, to hang round my
neck for an amulet.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Am I really nineteen years of age? I begin to
feel so old!—and yet I am the youngest of us.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I do think that nothing really nice ever lasts in
this world. The Baron de Montluc arrived here last
night from Byzantium with all sorts of bad news.
In the first place, Saladin, with his Paynim army,
has re-entered the Holy Land, and is marching, as
men fear, upon Neapolis. If he do this, he will cut
off Acre from the Holy City, and the young Lord
King cannot reach his capital. The Baron sent a
trusty messenger back to Acre, to Count Raymond,
urging him to hasten to the Holy City with the
King, and lose not an hour in doing it. The coast
road is still clear; or he could come by sea to Jaffa.
Messire de Montluc sent his own signet as a token
to Count Raymond—which ring the Count knows
well. Guy has ordered us all to pack up, and return
without loss of time to the Holy City, where he will
take the command till Count Raymond arrives.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, Elaine!—how wouldst thou like a siege?"
triumphantly asks Amaury.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>May all the holy saints avert such a calamity!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But there is, if possible, even worse behind:
inasmuch as a foe without the gates is less formidable
than a traitor within them. The Patriarch (I will
not call him holy this time) and the Lord Roger
had returned as far as Byzantium a few days before
Messire de Montluc left that city, and it comes out
now, what all their fine talk of pilgrimage meant.
They have been at the Court of England on purpose
to offer the crown of Jerusalem to King Henry the
father, seeing (say they) the distracted state of the
kingdom, the peril of Paynim war, and the fact that
King Henry is the nearest heir of King Foulques of
Anjou. Well, upon my word! As if the crown of
Jerusalem were theirs to offer!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It seems to me, too—but every body, even Guy,
says that is only one of my queer, unaccountable
notions—that, since King Foulques of Anjou had no
right to the crown except as the husband of Queen
Melisende, so long as her heirs remain in existence,
they should be preferred to his heirs by another
wife. But Amaury laughs at me for saying this.
He says, of course, when Count Foulques married
Queen Melisende, and became King, all her right
passed to him, and she was thenceforth simply his
consort, his children having as much right as hers.
It does not seem just and fair to me; but every one
only laughs, and says I have such absurd fancies.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, what would be the good of marrying an
heiress at all," says Amaury, "if you had to give up
her property when she died before you?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Still I do not see that it is just. And I wonder
if, sometimes, the queer ideas of one century do
not become the common ideas of the next. But
Amaury seems to think that notion exquisitely
ridiculous.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nonsense, Elaine!" says he. "It was a simple
matter of family arrangement. Don't go and fancy
thyself the wisest woman in the world! Thou hast
the silliest ideas I ever heard."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, I don't, Amaury," said I, "any more than
I fancy thee the wisest man."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy laughed, and told Amaury he had a Roland
for his Oliver.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="the-calm-before-the-storm"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER XI.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">THE CALM BEFORE THE STORM</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"It was but unity of place</span></div>
<div class="line"><span>Which made me dream I ranked with him."</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>—TENNYSON.</span></div>
</div></div>
</div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Here we are, safe in the Holy City, after a hurried
and most uncomfortable journey. All the quiet is
assuredly gone now. For the Holy City is full of
tumult—cries, and marchings, and musters, and
clashing of arms—from morning till night. Lady
Judith, looking as calm as ever, received us with a
blessing, and a soft, glad light in her eyes, which
told that she was pleased to have us back. The
Patriarch and the Master of the Temple have not
yet arrived. Guy thinks they may tarry at Acre
with Count Raymond, and come on in his train.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The Lord de Clifford has come from England, by
way of Jaffa, with the answer of King Henry the
father. It seems that the Patriarch actually took
with him the keys of the Holy City and the blessed
Sepulchre. I am astonished that Count Raymond
should have entrusted them to him. More than this,
they travelled by way of Rome, and through their
wicked misrepresentations obtained letters from the
Holy Father, urging King Henry to take on himself
this charge. King Henry was holding Court at
Reading when they came to him, and the Patriarch
says he was moved to tears at their account of the
miserable state of the Holy Land. (Well, I am not
going to deny the misery; but I do say it is
Count Raymond's fault, and that if matters had
been left in Guy's hands, they would never have
come to this pass.) King Henry, however, would
not give his answer at once; but bade them wait till
he had convoked his great council, which sat at
Clerkenwell on the eighteenth of March in last year.
The decision of the Parliament was that in the
interests of England the offer ought to be refused.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well!" said Guy, "as a mere question of political
wisdom, that is doubtless right; for, apart
from the pleasure of God, it would be the ruin of
England to have the Holy Land clinging round her
neck like a mill-stone. Yet remember, Lord Robert
the Courthose never prospered after he had refused
this crown of the world. He impiously blew out the
taper which had been lighted by miracle; and think
what his end was!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But dost thou think, my Lord," asked Lady
Sybil, looking up, "that he meant it impiously? I
have always thought his words so beautiful—that
he was not worthy to wear a crown of gold in the
place where our Lord had worn for us the crown of
thorns."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Very beautiful, Lady," said Guy a little drily,
"if he had not heard just before the conference
of the death of his brother, King William the Red."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well!—when King Henry gave his answer, what
did the Patriarch, but ask that one of his sons might
be substituted,—and Guy thinks he specially
indicated the Count of Poitou.[#] Guy says there are
great possibilities in our young Count; but Amaury
sneers at the idea. However, the King and the
Parliament alike declined to accept in the name of
any of the Princes, seeing none of themselves were
present: and the Patriarch had to content himself
with a promise of aid alone. King Henry took him
in his train to Normandy, and after celebrating the
holy Easter at Rouen, they had an interview with
the French King at Vaudreuil. Both the Kings
promised help, swearing on the souls of each other;[#]
and many nobles, both French and English, took
the holy cross. It is hoped that the King of France
and the Count of Poitou may lead an army hither in
a few months.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Richard Cœur-de-Lion, whose reputation was yet to be made.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span class="small">[#] The usual oath of monarchs in solemn form.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>"If we can manage to conclude a truce meanwhile,
and they do not come here to find us all
slaughtered or prisoners to the Paynim," says Guy.
"Great bodies move slowly; and kings and armies
are of that description."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Saladin has taken Neapolis! Our scouts bring
us word that he is ravaging and burning all the land
as he marches, and he has turned towards the Holy
City. Almost any morning, we may be awoke from
sleep with his dreadful magic engine sounding in our
ears. Holy Mary and all the saints, pray to the
good God for His poor servants!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And not a word comes from the Regent. Four
several messengers Guy has sent, by as many
different routes, in the hope that at least one of them
may reach Acre, earnestly urging him to send
instructions. We do not even know the condition of
matters at Acre. The King and the Regent may
themselves be prisoners. Oh, what is to be done?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy says that whatever may become of him, the
kingdom must not be lost: and if ten days more
pass without news of the Regent, he will parley with
Saladin, and if possible conclude a truce on his own
responsibility. I feel so afraid for Guy! I believe if
Count Raymond could find a handle, he would
destroy him without mercy. Guy himself seems to
perceive that the responsibility he is ready to assume
involves serious peril.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nevertheless, my Lady's inheritance must not
be lost," he says.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I asked Lady Judith this morning if she were not
dreadfully frightened of Saladin. They say he eats
Christian children, and sometimes maidens, when
the children run short.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If I felt no alarm, I should scarcely be a woman,
Helena," said she. "But I took my fear to the Lord,
as King David did. 'What time I am afraid,' he
says, 'I will trust in Thee.' And I had my answer
last night."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh!" said I. "What was it, if it please you,
holy Mother?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She lifted her head with a light in the grey eyes.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"'I am, I am thy Comforter. Know whom thou
art, afraid of a dying man, and of a son of men who
wither like grass: and thou forgettest God thy
Maker, the Maker of the heaven and
Foundation-Layer of the earth, and fearest ever, every day, the
face of the fury of thine oppressor.... And now,
where is the fury of thine oppressor?'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Did the good God speak to you in vision, holy Mother?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, Helena. He spake to me as He does to
thee—in His Word."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I thought it would have been a great deal more
satisfactory if she had been told in vision.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But how do you know, holy Mother," I ventured
to say, "that words written in holy Scripture, ever so
long ago, have something to do with you now?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"God's Word is living, my child," she said; "it is
not, like all other books, a dead book. His Word
who is alive for evermore, endureth for ever.
Moreover, there is a special promise that the Holy Spirit
shall bring God's words to the remembrance of His
servants, as they need. And when they come from
Him, they come living and with power."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then you think, holy Mother, that the Paynim
will be driven back?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not say that, my child. But I think that
the God who turned back Sennacherib is alive yet:
and the Angel who smote the camp of the Assyrians
can do it again if his Lord command him. And if
not—no real mischief, Helena,—no real harm—can
happen to him or her who abideth under the shadow
of God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But we might be killed, holy Mother!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"We might," she said, so quietly that I looked at
her in amazement.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother!" I exclaimed.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou dost not understand our Lord's words,
Helena!—'And they shall kill some of you, ... and
a hair from the head of you shall not be lost.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Indeed I do not," said I bluntly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And I cannot make thee do so," she added
gently. "God must do it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But why does He not do it? Have I not asked
Him, over and over again, to make me understand?
I suppose something is in the way, and something
which is my fault. But how am I to get rid of it
when I do not even know what it is?</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The ten days are over, and no word comes from
the Regent. Guy has assumed, as Vice-Regent, the
command of the Holy City. Of course he is the
person to do it, as Lady Sybil's husband. Our
scouts report that Saladin is marching through the
pass of Gerizim. Guy has sent out a trumpeter with
a suitable armed escort, to sound a parley, and
invite the Paynim to meet with him and arrange for a
truce at Lebonah. Until the trumpeter returns, we
do not know whether this effort will succeed.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Sybil, I can see, is excessively anxious, and
very uneasy lest, if Guy go to parley with Saladin,
the wicked Paynim should use some treachery towards him.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is God's will!" she said; but I saw tears in
her sweet eyes. "The battle, and the toil, and the
triumph for the men: the waiting, and weeping, and
praying for the women. Perhaps, in their way, the
humble bedeswomen do God's will as much as the
warrior knights."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The trumpeter returned last night, with a message
from Saladin almost worthy of a Christian knight.
It seems very strange that Paynims should be
capable of courtesy.[#]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] A most expressive word in the Middle Ages,
not restricted, as now,
civility, but including honourable sentiments
and generous conduct.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Saladin is willing to conclude a truce, and will
meet Guy at Lebonah to do so; but it is to be for
six months only, and Guy says the terms are
somewhat hard. However, it is the best thing he can do:
and as the Regent maintains his obstinate silence,
something must be done. So far as our envoys
could learn, the Paynim army has not been near
Acre, and only crossed the Jordan some thirty miles
lower down. It appears clear, therefore, that the
Regent might have answered if he would.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Guy and Amaury set out yesterday morning for
Lebonah to meet Saladin. It is two or three days'
journey from the Holy City, and allowing three
days more for conference, it must be ten days at
least ere they can return.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wander about the house, and can settle to
nothing. Lady Sybil sits at work, but I believe
she weeps more than she works. Eschine's
embroidery grows quietly. I have discovered that she
carries her heart out of sight.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We were talking this morning—I hardly know
how the subject came up—about selfishness. Lady
Isabel said, with a toss of her head, that she was
sure no reasonable being could call her selfish.
(Now I could not agree with her, for I have always
thought her very much so.) Lady Judith quietly
asked her in what she thought selfishness consisted.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"In being stingy and miserly, of course," said she.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, but stingy of what?" responded Lady
Judith. "I think people make a great mistake
when they restrict selfishness merely to being
miserly with money. I should say that the man
is unselfish who will give willingly that which he
counts precious. But that means very different
things to different people."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I wonder what it means to us five," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith looked round with a smile. "I
almost think I could tell you," said she.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, do!" we all said but Lady Isabel.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, to me," answered Lady Judith, "it means,
submitting,—because some one wishes it who has
a right to my submission, or else as a matter of
Christian love—to do any thing in a way which I
think inferior, absurd, or not calculated to effect
the end proposed. In other words, my ruling sin
is self-satisfaction."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We all exclaimed against this conclusion: but
she maintained that it was so.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then," she continued, "to Sybil, it means depriving
herself of her lord's society, either for his
advantage or for that of some one else."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Sybil smiled and blushed. "Then my
ruling sin——?" she said interrogatively.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nay, I did not undertake to draw that inference
in any case but my own," said Lady Judith with an
answering smile.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We all—except Lady Isabel—begged that she
would do it for us. She seemed, I thought, to assent
rather reluctantly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"You will not like it," said she. "And if you
drew the inference for yourselves, you would be
more likely to attend to the lesson conveyed."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, but we might do it wrong," I said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith laughed. "Am I, then, so infallible
that I cannot do it wrong?" said she. "Well,
Sybil, my dear, if thou wouldst know, I think thy
tendency—I do not say thy passion, but thy
tendency—is to idolatry."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh!" cried Lady Sybil, looking quite distressed.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But now, misunderstand me not," pursued Lady
Judith. "Love is not necessarily idolatry. When
we love the creature </span><em class="italics">more</em><span> than the Creator—when,
for instance, thou shalt care more to please thy lord
than to please the Lord—then only is it idolatry.
Therefore, I use the word tendency; I trust it is not
more with thee.—Well, then, with Isabel"——</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Isabel gave a toss of her head,—a gesture
to which she is very much addicted.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"With Isabel," continued Lady Judith, "unselfishness
would take the form of resigning her own
ease or pleasure to suit the convenience of another,
Her temptation, therefore, is to indolence and
self-pleasing. With Helena"——</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I pricked up my ears. What was I going to hear?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"With Helena," said she, smiling on me, "it
would be, I think, to fulfil some duty, though those
whom she loved might misunderstand her and think
her silly for it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then what is my besetting sin, holy Mother?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Pride of intellect, I think," she answered; "very
nearly the same as my own."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother, you have left out Dame Eschine!"
said Lady Isabel rather sharply.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Have I?" said Lady Judith. "Well, my
children, you must ask the Lord wherein Eschine's
selfishness lies, for I cannot tell. I dare not deny
its existence; I believe all sinners have it in some
form. Only, in this case, </span><em class="italics">I</em><span> cannot detect it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Eschine looked up with an expression of utter
amazement.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother!" she exclaimed. "It seemed to
me, as you went on, that I had every one of those
you mentioned."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith's smile was very expressive.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dear child," she said, "these are not my
words,—'Blessed are the poor in spirit; for theirs is the
kingdom of the heavens.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Does she think Eschine the best of us all? Is
she? Dear me! I never should have thought it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well!" said Lady Isabel, with a sort of snort,
and another toss, "I am quite sure that I have not
one of those faults you mentioned."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, my child!" responded Lady Judith. "Take
heed of the Pharisee spirit—Eschine, what wouldst
thou say was thy besetting sin?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I really cannot tell, I have so many!" answered
Eschine modestly. "But I sometimes think that
it may be—perhaps—a want of meekness and
patience."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I stared at her in astonishment.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, thank the saints, I am in no want of
patience!" said Lady Isabel. "And if any one
knew all I have to try it"——</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I turned and looked at her, if possible, in
astonishment still greater.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Really, how very, very little, people do know
themselves! If there be a patient creature in this
world, it is Eschine: and if there be an impatient
one, it is Lady Isabel.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wonder whether I know myself? I do not think
I should have set myself down as proud of my
intellect. But we Lusignans always have had
brains—except Amaury; he has stepped out of the ranks.
And I don't like people to disagree with me, and
contradict me, nor to behave as if they thought I
had no sense. That is true enough. I suppose I
must be proud.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And yet, it cannot be wrong to know that one has
brains. What is pride? Where does the knowledge
end, and the sin begin? Oh dear! how is one ever
to know?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>If two and two would only make four in every
thing! Or is it that one makes mistakes one's self
in the adding-up?</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Lady Judith asked me this morning if I was
vexed with her yesterday, for what she said of me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh no!" I answered at once. "But I did not
know that I was proud of my intellect. I think I
knew that I was proud of my rank."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou art right there, my child," she said. "Yet
I fear the pride of intellect is more likely to harm
thee, just because thou art less conscious of it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother," said I, "do you think my sister
Eschine the best of us?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"We human creatures, Helena, are poor judges
of each other. But if thou wouldst know—so far as
I am able to judge—I think the two holiest persons
in all this Palace are Eschine and thine old Margarita."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Better than Lady Sybil!" I cried.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not undervalue Sybil. She is good and true;
and I believe she does earnestly desire to serve
God. But it seems to me that the most Christ-like
spirit I know is not Sybil, but Eschine."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I must think about it, and study Eschine. I
certainly made a sad mistake when I thought there was
nothing in her. But the holiest person in the house!
That seems very strange to me. I believe, now,
that what I took for absence of feeling is a mixture
of great humility and profound self-control. But
the queerest thing is, that I think she really loves
Amaury. And how any creature can love Amaury
is a puzzle to me. For no being with an atom of
brains can look up to him: and how can you love
one whom you cannot respect? Besides which, he
evidently despises Eschine—I believe he does all
women—and he scolds and snubs her from morning
to night for everything she does or does not do.
Such treatment as that would wear my love in holes—If
it were possible for me ever to feel any for such
an animal as Amaury. If I were Eschine, I should
be anxious to get as far away from him as I could,
and should be delighted when he relieved me of his
company. Yet I do think Eschine really misses
him, and will be honestly glad when he comes back,
It is very unaccountable.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Our anxieties are all turned to rejoicing at once.
Guy and Amaury returned last night, having
concluded a six months' truce with Saladin: and
Eschine had the pleasure—I am sure she felt it a
very great one—when Amaury entered her chamber,
of placing in his arms the boy for whom he had so
fervently longed, who was born three days before
they came back. Little Hugues—Amaury says that
must be his name—seems as fine a child as Héloïse,
and as likely to live. Amaury was about as pleased
as it is in his nature to be; but he always seems to
have his eyes fixed on the wormwood of life rather
than the honey.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou hast shown some sense at last!" he said;
and Eschine received this very doubtful commendation
as if it had been the most delightful compliment.
Then Amaury turned round, and snapped
at me, because I could not help laughing at his
absurdity.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I asked Marguerite this evening what she thought
was her chief fault.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha!—the good God knows," she said. "It is
very difficult to tell which of one's faults is the
worst."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But what dost thou think?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well," she answered, "I think that my chief
fault is—with all deference—the same as that of my
Damoiselle: and that is pride. Only that we are
proud of different things."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And of what art thou proud, Margot?" asked I
laughingly, but rather struck to find that she had hit
on the same failing (in me) as Lady Judith.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! My Damoiselle may well ask. And I
cannot tell her. What is or has an old villein
woman, ignorant and foolish, to provoke pride?
I only know it is there. It does not fasten on one
thing more than another, but there it is. And pride
is a very subtle sin, if it please my Damoiselle. If I
had nothing in the world to be proud of but that I
was the ugliest woman in it, I believe I could be
proud of that."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I laughed. "Well, and wherein lies my pride,
Margot?" said I, wishful to see whether she
altogether agreed with Lady Judith.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Can I see into the inmost heart of my Damoiselle?
It is like a shut-up coffer, this human heart.
I can only look on the outside, I. But on the
outside, I see two things. My Damoiselle is noble, and
she is clever. And she knows both."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Which is the worse, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! Both are bad enough, to make pride. But
this I think: that even a king can never fancy
himself so noble as the good God; yet a good many of
us think ourselves quite as wise."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Margot!—who could think that?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Does my Damoiselle herself never think that she
could arrange matters better than the good God is
ordering them? What is that, but to say in our
hearts, 'I am the wiser'?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It is very queer, how Lady Judith and Marguerite
always do think alike.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Margot, who wouldst thou say was the holiest
woman in this house?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The answer was unhesitating.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I do not know; I can only guess. But if my
Damoiselle wishes me to guess—the noble Lady
Judith, and Dame Eschine."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>How very odd!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"When I asked thee once before, Margot, thou
didst not mention Eschine at all."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Let my Damoiselle pardon me. I did not
know enough of her then. And she is not one to
know in a minute. Some are like an open book,
quickly read: and others are like a book in a
strange tongue, of which one knows but little, and
they have to be spelt out; and some, again, are like
a locked book, which you cannot read at all without
the key. Dame Eschine, if my Damoiselle pleases,
is the book in the strange tongue; but the book is
very good, and quite worth the trouble to learn it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Where didst thou find such a comparison,
Margot? Thou canst not read."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I? Ha!—no. But I can see others do it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And what kind of book am I, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha!—my Damoiselle is wide, wide open."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And the Lady Sybil?" asked I, feeling much amused.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Usually, open; but she can turn the key if she will."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was rather surprised. "And Count Guy?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Quite as wide open as my Damoiselle."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then where dost thou find thy locked book, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was still more astonished at the answer.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"If my Damoiselle pleases,—the Lady Isabel."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Margot! I think she is quite easy to read."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am mistaken," said Marguerite with quiet
persistence, "if my Damoiselle has yet read one page
of that volume."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now I should have called the Regent a locked
book," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Hardly, if my Damoiselle pleases. There is a
loose leaf which peeps out."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, that romance is not a pleasant one," said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Pleasant? Ha!—no. But it is long, and one
cannot see the end of the story before one comes
to it."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>At last, a letter has come from the Regent.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It is quite different to what I expected. He
approves of all that Guy has done, and more,—he
actually thanks him for acting so promptly. (Are
we misjudging the man?) The King is in good
health, and the Regent thinks he will very shortly
do well to return to the Holy City, as soon as the
autumn rains are well over. The Lady Countess, he
says, is suffering greatly, and he fears the damp
weather increases her malady. He speaks quite
feelingly about it, as though he really loved her.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Early this morning was born dear Lady Sybil's
second baby—still, like Agnes, a little frail thing;
and still a daughter. But Guy seems just as pleased
with his child as if it were a healthy boy. He is so
different from Amaury!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Both Guy and Lady Sybil wish the infant to
bear my name. So this evening the Patriarch is to
christen her Helena,—thus placing her under the
safe protection of the blessed Saint Helena, mother
of the Lord Constantine the Emperor, and also of
the holy Queen of Adiabene, who bestowed such
toil and money on the holy shrines.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>As if to show that joys, as well as misfortunes, do
not come single, this afternoon arrived a courier with
letters from Lusignan,—one from Monseigneur to
Guy, another from Raoul for Amaury, and one
from Alix for me. All are well, thank the saints!—and
Alix has now three children, of whom two are
boys. Raoul is about to make a grand match, with
one of the richest heiresses in Normandy,—the Lady
Alix, Countess of Eu. Little Valence, Guillot's
elder child, has been betrothed to the young
Seigneur de Parthenay. I am rather surprised that
Guillot did not look higher, especially after Guy's
marriage and Raoul's.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy asked me to-day when I meant to be married.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, please, Guy, don't talk about it!" said I.
"I would so much rather not."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou mean to be a nun, then?" asked he.
I think he hardly expected it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well," said I, "if I must, I must. But I want to
know why I could not go on living quietly without
either?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, one of the original notions of the Damoiselle
de Lusignan," said he. "Because, my eccentric
Elaine, nobody ever does."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But why does nobody?" said I. "And why
should not I begin it? Every thing must begin
some time, and with somebody."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But Guy seemed so much amused that I did not
pursue the topic.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Please thyself," said he, when he had finished
laughing. "But why dost thou prefer single life?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"For various reasons," said I. "For one, I like to
have my own way."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, now, women are queer folks!" said Guy.
"Oh my most rational sister, wilt thou not have to
obey thine abbess? And how much better will that
be than obeying thine husband?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It will be better in two respects," I answered.
"In the first place, an abbess is a woman, and would
therefore be more reasonable than a man; and in"——</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh dear! I did not understand that!" said
Guy. "I am rather ignorant and stupid."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou art," said I. "And in the second, I should
try, as soon as possible, to be an abbess myself."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My best wishes attend thy speedy promotion,
most holy Mother!" said Guy, bowing low, but
laughing. "I perceive I was very stupid. But thou
seest, I really did not know that women were such
extremely reasonable beings. I fancied that, just
now and then, they were slightly unreasonable."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, Guy, give over!" said I. "But can I not
wait a while? Must I decide at once?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Of course not, if that be thy wish," said Guy.
"But thou art past the usual age for profession."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then I shall be all the more likely to receive
promotion quickly," I replied.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Fairest of nuns, here is my sword!" said Guy,
kneeling and offering me the hilt. "I surrender
myself, a vanquished prisoner, to thy superior
wisdom."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>So the matter passed off in a good laugh.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Now that the truce is concluded, all is peaceful
and happy. It is so nice, after the tumult, and
suspense, and anxiety, to have nothing to think of
but what robe one shall wear to this feast, and how
one shall arrange one's jewels for that dance. I
wish it would last for ever!—if only one did not get
tired even of pleasant things, when they have gone
on for a while. If one could get hold of some
pleasure of which one never got tired!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I want to introduce our national dance of Poitou,
the minuet. I have taught it to Lady Isabel, and
two or three of the damsels in waiting: and Perette
and Bertrade will help. Lady Isabel admires it
very much; she says it is a grand, stately dance,
and fit for a princess.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It seems very odd to me, that the ladies of this
country look upon it as beneath them to superintend
the cooking, and leave it all to their servants. How
strange it would be if we did that in Poitou! They
order what is to be done, but they never put their
own hands to the work. I know what Alix would
look like, if I told her.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The first banquet was to have been on Monday,
but it is an unlucky day, as the moon will be in
opposition to Mars; so it had to be deferred. We
heard yesterday that the Countess of Edessa
actually gave a banquet last week on a vigil, and
what should she do but invite just enough to make
thirteen! I suppose she never thought about either.
She is the most thoughtless woman I ever saw.
Messire de Montluc was one of the guests, and when
he perceived the calamity, he feigned to bleed at the
nose, and asked leave to retire. I suppose he did
not wish to run the risk of dying within a year and
a day. How can people be so careless? Why, it
is almost as bad as murder.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="will-she-give-him-up"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER XII.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">WILL SHE GIVE HIM UP?</em></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><em class="italics">Elmina</em><span>.—We can bear all things!</span></div>
<div class="line"><em class="italics">Gonsalez</em><span>.—Can ye bear disgrace?</span></div>
<div class="line"><em class="italics">Ximena</em><span>.—We were not born for this.</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>—FELICIA HEMANS.</span></div>
</div></div>
</div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I suppose it is only about thirty hours, yet it looks
as if it might be as many weeks, since I sat in the
bower with Lady Judith, broidering a mantle of
cramoisie for Lady Sybil. We were talking of
different things, carrying on no special train of
conversation. Lady Sybil had been with us; but, a
few minutes before, Guy had called her into the hall,
to assist in receiving a messenger just arrived with
letters from the Regent. Something which Lady
Judith said amused me, and I was making a playful
reply, when all at once there broke on us, from the
hall, such a bitter, wailing cry, as instantly told us
that something terrible must have happened. The
mantle was dropped upon the rushes, and Lady
Judith and I were both in the hall in an instant.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The messenger, a young knight, stood at the
further side of the daïs, where were Guy and Lady
Sybil. She had apparently fainted, or was very
near it, and he was holding her in his arms, and
endeavouring to whisper comfort.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, what is the matter?" broke from me, as my
eyes sought first Guy and then the messenger.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy did not answer. I am not sure that he heard
me. It was the young knight who replied.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Damoiselle, if it please your Nobility, our young
Lord Beaudouin the King has been commanded to
the Lord."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I never wished I was not noble until that minute.
Had I been a villein, he would have told me
without considering the pleasure of my Nobility, and
I should have been out of suspense one second
sooner.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith's one thought seemed to be for the
poor mother, who was utterly overcome by the
sudden news of her first-born's death. She actually
opened the casement with her own hands, though
there were plenty of damsels and squires in the
hall, whom she might have called to do it. One
she sent for water, and sprinkled a few drops on
Lady Sybil's face, entreating her to drink some wine
which a squire brought in haste. She appeared to
swallow with difficulty, but it seemed to revive her,
and her voice came back.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, my boy, my boy!" she cried piteously.
"And I was not there! It was not in my arms
he died. My first-born, my darling! I was not
there."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Ay, that seemed the climax of her misery—she
was not there! I was very, very sorry, both for
her and for the child. But another thought soon
darted into my brain, and it was too hard for me
to solve. Who was the King of Jerusalem now?
When I thought it meet, I whispered the question
to Guy. He made me no answer in words, but his
quick downward glance at the golden head still
bowed upon his arm told me what he thought.
And all at once the full significance of that death
flashed upon me. Lady Sybil was the Queen of
the World, and might have to do battle for her
glorious heritage.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>There was no doubt concerning the right. Only
two remained of the House of Anjou: and there
could be no question as to whether the elder or
younger sister should succeed. Lady Sybil's right
had been originally set aside: and now it had come
back to her.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>In an instant I saw, as by a flash of lightning,
that the idea had occurred to others; for the squire
had offered the wine upon the knee.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But the Regent! Would he acquiesce meekly in
a change which would drive him back to his original
insignificance, and restore Guy to his place of
supreme honour? Lady Sybil is no child, but a
woman of full age. There might (in a man's eyes)
be an excuse in putting her aside for her son, but
there could be none for her sister or her daughter.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was not for some hours that I saw the Regent's
letter; not till Lady Sybil's bitter wailing had died
down to peace, and we were able to turn our eyes
from the past to the future. Then Guy showed it
me. I was astonished at the quiet matter-of-fact
way in which Count Raymond recognised Lady
Sybil's right, and deferred to Guy as the person to
decide upon every thing. I asked Lady Judith, this
morning, what she thought it meant. Was this
man better than we had supposed? Had we been
unjust to him?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I cannot tell yet, Helena," she said; "but I
think we shall know now very soon. It either
bodes great good to Sybil,—or else most serious
mischief."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"He says no word about his Lady Countess," I
suggested.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No," said Lady Judith. "I should have liked
it better if he had done."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then what can we do?" I asked.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wait and pray," responded she.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wait!" Oh dear me!—it is always waiting. I
detest it. Why can't things happen in a lump and
get done with themselves?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Count Raymond—for I must give over calling
him the Regent,—(and dear me! I must learn to
call Lady Sybil the Queen as soon as she is
crowned,—however shall I do it?)—Count Raymond
says, in the end of his letter, that he will reach the
Holy City, if it please the saints, about ten days
hence, with the coffin of the young Lord King, that
he may be laid with his fathers in the Church of the
Holy Sepulchre. So, I suppose, for these ten days we
shall know nothing. I would scratch them out of the
calendar, if I had pumice-stone of the right quality.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And yet—it comes over me, though I do hate
to think it!—suppose these ten days should be the
last days of peace which we are to know!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother, how </span><em class="italics">can</em><span> you wait to know
things?" I asked Lady Judith.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"How canst thou?" said she with a little laugh.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Why, I must!" said I. "But as to doing it
patiently!"——</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is easier to wait patiently than impatiently,
my child."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O holy Mother!" cried I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is," she gently persisted. "But that patience,
Helena, is only to be had from God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But can you help longing to know?" said I.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Rebelliously and feverishly thirsting to know, I
can. But it is only in God's strength that I can do
it. Certainly I cannot help feeling that I shall be
relieved when His time is come. I should be more
or less than woman, if I could."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But how," said I, "do you keep yourself patient?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"</span><em class="italics">He</em><span> keeps me patient, Helena. I cannot keep
myself. He knows: He is at the helm: He will
guide me to the haven where I would be. Ah, my
child, thou hast yet to learn what that meaneth,—'When
He giveth quietness, who shall then condemn?'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Indeed I have. And I do not know how to begin.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>We have been very busy, after all, during the
terrible interval, and it hardly seems ten days since
the news came. All the mourning robes were to
be made of sackcloth—bah! how rough and coarse
it is!—one need be a villein to stand it!—and the
hoods of cloth of Cyprus. I never remember being
in mourning before Amaury's poor little baby was
born and died in one day, and I did hope then
that I should never need it again. It is so abominable
to wear such stuff—and how it smells!—and to
have to lay aside one's gloves, just like a bourgeoise!
Count Raymond is expected to-night.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I did not properly guess what a dreadful scene
it would be, when the coffin was borne into the
hall by four knights, and laid down on the daïs,
and the lid opened, and the embalmed body of the
fair child brought to view, clad in the cowl of the
holy brethren of Saint Benedict, which was put on
him just before he died. The holy Patriarch—I
suppose he is holy, being a patriarch—held the
holy censer, which he swung to and fro by the head
of the coffin; and a royal chaplain at his side bore
the bénitier, from which each of us, coming forward,
took the asperge, and sprinkled the still face with
holy water.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was Lady Sybil's turn last, of course. But
she, the poor mother, broke down utterly, and
dropped the asperge, and if Guy had not sprung
forward and caught her, I think she would have
fainted and fallen on the coffin of her child.
Oh, it was terrible!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Later in the evening, there was a family council,
at which Count Raymond suggested—and Guy
said it was an excellent idea—that Lady Sybil
should convene a council of all the nobles, when
her title should be solemnly recognised, and no
room be left for any dissension about it in future.
The council, therefore, will meet on Midsummer
Day next, and at the same time it will be decided
what to do after the truce with Saladin has expired.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I tapped at Lady Judith's door as I went up to bed.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, holy Mother," said I, when I was inside,
and the door shut, "what think you now of the
Count of Tripoli?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What thinkest thou, Helena?" answered she.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Truly, I hardly know what to think," I said.
"He speaks fair."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ay," she said; "he speaks fair."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I thought I detected the slightest possible
emphasis on the verb.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I think you mean something, holy Mother," said
I bluntly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Helena, when the Lord Count was proposing the
convention of the council, and all that was to follow,
and Count Guy assented, and said he thought it a
good idea,—didst thou happen to look at Count
Raymond's face?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, holy Mother, I did not."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I did. And at the instant when Count Guy
assented to his proposal, I caught one triumphant
flash in his eyes. From that hour I was certain he
meant mischief."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>My heart fell,—fell.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What sort of mischief?" I asked fearfully.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The Lord knoweth," quietly said she; "and the
Lord reigneth, Helena. 'Wonderful are the ragings
of the sea: wonderful in the heights is the Lord.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And that seems to comfort her. I wish it would
comfort me.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The Council is holding its sitting: and so serious
are its deliberations considered, that only one
woman beside Lady Sybil herself is permitted to
attend it. Of course it was not meet she should be
without any lady or damsel. But she chose Lady
Judith, with a pretty little apology to me, lest I
should fancy myself slighted.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Lady Judith is old and very wise," she said. "I
should like her to hear the deliberations of the
nobles, that I may have, if need be, the benefit of
her counsel afterwards."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I suppose it is the swearing of allegiance that
takes such a long time. They have been four hours
already.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Sir God, have mercy upon me! I never dreamed
of the anguish that was in store for me. I do not
know how to bear it. O fair Father, Jesu Christ, by
the memory of Thine own cross and passion, help
me, if it be only to live through it!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I wondered why, when the Council broke up,
Lady Sybil shut herself up and refused to admit any
one, and Guy was nowhere to be found. I felt a
vague sort of uneasiness, but no more, till a soft
hand was laid upon my shoulder, and I looked up in
Lady Judith's face.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And then, in an instant, the vague uneasiness
changed to acute terror.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Her look was one of such deep, overwhelming
compassion, that I knew at once she had that to tell
me which she justly feared might break my heart.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What—?" I gasped.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Come here with me," she said; and she took me
into her own cell, and barred the door. "Helena,
dear child, there is something to tell thee which thou
wilt find very bitter, and thy brother and Sybil
think best that I should tell it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Go on, if you please, holy Mother. Any thing
but suspense!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The Council of nobles," she said, "are agreed to
admit Sybil's right, and to pay their homage to her
as Queen, if she on her part will accept one
condition dictated by them. But if she refuse the
condition, they refuse the allegiance; and will raise
against her the banner of Isabel, who was called
into the Council, and declared herself ready to
accept it."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And—the condition?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That she shall divorce Count Guy, and wed with
one of themselves."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It seemed to me as though my head went round,
but my heart stood still. And then a cry broke
from me, which was a mixture of fear, and
indignation, and disdain, and cruel, cruel anguish.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Sybil to divorce Guy! Our sweet-eyed, silver-voiced
Sybil, whom we so loved, to divorce my Guy,
my king of men! To be willing to do it!—to
purchase her fair, proud inheritance at the price of
the heart which loved her, and which she loved!
My heart and brain alike cried out, Impossible!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Was I dreaming? This thing could not be,—should
not be! Holy Saints, let me wake and know it!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is not possible!" I shrieked. "She will
not—she cannot! Did she not say so?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Her first words," said Lady Judith, "were utterly
and indignantly to refuse compliance."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well!—and then?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then several of the nobles pressed it upon her,
endeavouring to show her the advantages to be
derived from the divorce."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Advantages!" I cried.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"To the country, dear," said Lady Judith gently.
"But for four hours she held out. No word was
to be wrung from her but 'I could not dream of
such a thing!' 'Then, Lady,' said the Lord Count
of Edessa, 'you can no longer be our Queen.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And did that sway her?" I cried indignantly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nothing seemed to sway her, till Count Guy
rose himself, and, though with faltering lips,
earnestly entreated her assent. Then she gave way so
far as to promise to consider the question."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>That was like Guy. If he thought it for her good,
I am sure he would urge it upon her, though it
broke his own heart. But for her to give way
</span><em class="italics">then</em><span>——!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother, tell me she will not do it!" I cried.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"She has locked herself up, to think and pray,"
said Lady Judith. "But it is well to know the worst
at once,—I think she will, Helena."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother, you must have gone mad!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I did not mean to be rude. I was only in too
great agony to see any thing but itself. And Lady
Judith seemed to understand.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Who proposed it?" I demanded.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Ah! I knew what the answer would be. "Count
Raymond of Tripoli."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well, he cannot be the one she weds!" said I,
grinding my teeth.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"He can, Helena. The Countess has been dead
these four months. He says he wrote to tell us, and
his letter must have miscarried."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And is Satan to have it all his own way?" I cried.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, assuredly, dear child. Christ is stronger
than he."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Holy Mother, can you see one speck of light in
this thick and horrible darkness?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I never see but one light in any darkness," she
said. "'God is light, and darkness in Him there is
none at all.' Dear Helena, wilt thou not put thine
hand in His, and let Him lead thee to the light?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Could the good God not have prevented all
this?" I wailed.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Perhaps not, for thy sake," she said softly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Oh, she will not, she will not!" I moaned.
"Holy Mother, tell me she never will!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I cannot, dear. On the contrary, I think she will."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I never could have believed it of Lady Sybil!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith made no reply; but I thought the
expression of pain deepened in her face.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dear Helena," was her gentle answer, "sometimes
we misunderstand our friends. And very
often we misunderstand our Father."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She tried to comfort me: but I was past comfort.
I was past food, sleep,—every thing. I went
to bed,—it was a miserable relief to get away
from the daylight; but I could not sleep, and
no tears would come. Only one exceeding bitter
cry,—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Help me, Jesu Christ!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Would He help me? What had I ever been to
Him, or done for Him, that He should? He had
shed His life-blood on the holy rood for me; and I
had barely ever so much as thanked Him for it. I
had never cared about Him. Where was the good
of asking Him?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Yet I must cry to Him, for who else was there?
Of course there were Mary Mother and the holy
saints: but—Oh, I hope it was not wicked!—it
seemed as if in my agony I pushed them all aside,
and went straight up to Him to whom all prayer
must come at last.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Help me, Jesu Christ!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Where was Guy?—feeling, in his darkened chamber,
as if his heart were breaking?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Where was Sybil?—awake, perhaps, with a lighted
lamp, wrestling between the one love of her heart
and the pride of life.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And where was God? Did He hear me? Would
He hear? And the cry came again, wrung from my
very life as if I must have help.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Help me, Jesu Christ! I have no help. I can do
nothing. I can even think of nothing. I can bear
no more. Help me, not because I deserve help, but
because I want Thee!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And the darkness went on, and the quiet beats of
the water-clock, and the low, musical cry of the
watchmen outside; and the clang of arms as they
changed guard: but no holy angel came down from
Heaven to tell me that my prayer was heard, and
that it should be to me even as I would.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Was there no help?—was there no hope?—was
there no God in Heaven?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh, it cannot, cannot be that she will decide
against him! Yet Lady Judith thinks she will. I
cannot imagine why. Our own sweet Sybil, to whom
he has seemed like the very life of her life! No, it
can never be true! She will never, never give him up.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="waiting-for-the-inevitable"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER XIII.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">WAITING FOR THE INEVITABLE</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"Oh, hard to watch the shore-lights,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>And yet no signal make!</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>Hardest, to him the back on Love,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>For Love's own blessed sake!</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>For me the darkness riseth,</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>But not for me the light;</span></div>
</div>
<div class="line"><span>I breast the waters' heaving foam</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>For love of Love, to-night."</span></div>
</div></div>
</div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>She has given him up,—my Guy, my hero, my king
of men!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>No, I could never have believed it! One short
month ago, if all the prophets and wise women and
holy monks in Palestine had come in a body and
told me this thing, I should have laughed them to
scorn,—I should have thought the dead would rise
first.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Ah! this is not our Sybil who has played this
part. The Sybil whom I loved, next to Guy himself,
has vanished into nothingness, and in her stead has
come a creature that wears her face, and speaks with
her voice,—cold, calculating, false!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was again Lady Judith who told me. I thought
I was prepared for this. But I found that I was not.
By the crushing pain which struck me, I knew that
I had not really believed it would be thus,—that I
had clung, like a drowning man, to the rope which
failed me in this extremity—that I had honestly
thought that the God to whom I had cried all night
long would have come and saved me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>That Sybil should fail was bitterness enough.
But what was I to do when Christ failed me? Either
He could not hear at all, or He would not hear me.
And I did not see that it was of much consequence
which it was, since, so far as I was concerned, both
came to the same thing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The comfort Lady Judith tried to offer me sounded
like cruel mockery. Even the soft pressure of her
hand upon my head rasped my heart like a file.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Poor, dear child!" she said. "It is so hard to
walk in the dark. If the Lord have marked thee
for His own—as by the strivings of His Spirit with
thee, I trust He has—how sorry He must be for
thee, just now!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Sorry! Then why did He do it? When I am
sorry for one I love, I do not give him bitter pain.
I felt as if I should sink and die, if I did not
get relief by pouring out my heart. I broke from
Lady Judith,—she tried in vain to stop me—and I
dashed into Lady Sybil's chamber. Queen or
villein, it was all one to me then. I was far past
any considerations of that sort. If she had ordered
me to be instantly beheaded, I should not have
thought it signified a straw.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I found her seated on the settle in the window.
Oh, how white and worn and weary she looked!
Dark rings were round her eyes, worn by pain and
weeping and watching through that dreadful night.
But I heeded not the signs of her woe. She
deserved them. Guy's wrong burned in my heart,
and consumed every thing but itself.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She rose hastily when she saw me, and a faint
flush came to her white cheek.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah,—Helena!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She spoke in a hesitating tone, as if she scarcely
knew what to say. She might well tremble before
Guy's sister!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>What a strange thing it is, that when our hearts
are specially wrung with distress, our eyes seem
opened to notice all sorts of insignificant minutiæ
which we should never see at another time, or should
never remember if we did see them. I perceived
that one of the buttons of Lady Sybil's robe had
caught her chatelaine, and that a bow of ribbon on
her super-tunic was coming loose.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"May it please your Grace," I said—and I heard
a hard metallic ring in my own voice,—"have I
heard the truth just now from Lady Judith?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What hast thou heard, Helena?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I did not spare her for the crushing clasp of her
hands, for the slight quiver of the under lip. Let
her suffer! Had she not wronged my Guy?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I have heard that your Grace means to give
way before the vulgar clamour of your inferiors,
and to repudiate your wedded lord at their dictation."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>No, I would not spare her so much as one
adjective. She pressed her lips close, and a sort of
shudder went over her from head to foot. But she
said, in a calm, even voice, like a child repeating
some formal lesson—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou hast heard the truth."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>If she would have warmed into anger, and have
resented my words, I think I might have kept more
within bounds. But she was as cold as ice, and it
infuriated me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And you call yourself a Christian and a
Catholic?" cried I, raising my voice.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The Lord knoweth!" was her cool answer.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The Lord look upon it, and avenge us!" I cried.
"Do you know how I loved you? Next to my
love for Guy himself,—better than I loved any
other, save you two, in earth or Heaven! You!—was
it you I loved? My sister Sybil loved Guy,
and would have died rather than sacrifice him to a
mob of parvenu nobles. She is gone, and you are
come in her stead, the saints know how! You are
not the Sybil whom I loved, but a stranger,—a
cold, calculating, politic, false-hearted woman.
Heartless, ungenerous, faithless, false! I sweep you
out of my heart this day, as if you had never
entered it. You are false to Guy, and false to
God. I will never, never, never forgive you! From
this hour you are no more to me than the meanest
Paynim idolatress whom I would think scorn to
touch!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I do not know whence my words came, but they
poured out of me like the rain in a tempest. I
noted, without one spark of relenting, the shudder
which shook her again from head to foot when I
named Guy,—the trembling of lips and eyes,—the
pitiful, appealing look. No, I would not spare
one atom of misery to the woman who had broken
my Guy's heart.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Perhaps I was half mad. I do not know.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>When I stopped, at last, she only said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It must look so to thee. But trust me, Helena."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Trust you, Lady Sybil!—how to trust you?" I
cried. "Have I not trusted you these four years,
before I knew you for what you are? And you
say, 'Trust me!'—Hear her, holy Saints! Ay,
when I have done trusting the scorpions of this
land and the wolves of my own,—trust me, I will
trust you!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She rose, and came to me, holding out both
hands, with a look of piteous appeal in those fair
grey eyes that I used to love so much.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I know," she said,—"I know. Thou must think
so. Yet,—trust me, Helena!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I broke from her, and fled. I felt as if I could
not bear to touch her,—to look at her another
moment. To my own chamber I ran, and casting
myself on the bed, I buried my face in the pillow,
and lay there motionless. I did not weep; my
eyes were dry and hard as stones. I did not pray;
there was no good in it. Without God, without
hope, without any thing but crushing agony and a
sense of cruel wrong,—I think in that hour I was
as near Hell as I could be, and live.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was thus that Marguerite found me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I heard her enter the room. I heard the
half-exclamation, instantly checked, which came to her
lips. I heard her move quietly about the chamber,
arranging various little things, and at last come
and stand beside my bed.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Damoiselle!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I turned just enough to let her see my face.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is Satan tempting my Damoiselle very hard
just now?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>What made her ask that question?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, Margot," I said, sitting up, and pushing the
hair off my forehead. "God is very, very cruel
to me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, let my Damoiselle hush there!" cried the
old woman, in a tone of positive pain. "No, no,
never! She does not mean to cut her old nurse
to the heart, who loves her so dearly. But she will
do it, if she says such things of the gracious Lord."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Now, Margot, listen to me. I thought
something was going to happen which would wring my
heart to its very core. All night long I lay awake,
praying and crying to God to stay it. And He
has not heard me. He has let it happen—knowing
what it would be to me. And dost thou not call
that cruel?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ah, I guessed right. Satan is tempting my
Damoiselle, very, very hard. I thought so from
her face.—Damoiselle, the good Lord cannot be
cruel: it is not in His nature. No, no!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou know what has happened, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I? Ha!—no."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The Lady Sybil, incited by her nobles, has
consented to divorce Count Guy, and wed with
another."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I saw astonishment, grief, indignation, chase one
another over old Marguerite's face, followed by a
look of extreme perplexity. For a few moments
she stood thus, and did not speak. Then she put
her hands together, like a child at prayer, and lifted
her eyes upward.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Sir God," she said, "I cannot understand it. I
do not at all see why this is. Good Lord, it
puzzles poor old Marguerite very much. But Thou
knowest. Thou knowest all things. And Thou
canst not be hard, nor cruel, whatever things may
look like. Thou art love. Have patience with us,
Sir God, when we are puzzled, and when it looks
to us as if things were going all wrong. And teach
the child, for she does not know. My poor lamb
is quite lost in the wilderness, and the great wolf
is very near her. Gentle Jesu Christ, leave the
ninety and nine safe locked in the good fold, and
come and look for this little lamb. If Thou dost
not come, the great wolf will get her. And she is
Thy little lamb. It is very cold in the wilderness,
and very dark. Oh, do make haste!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou seemest to think that God Almighty is
sure to hear thee, Margot," said I wearily.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Yet I could not help feeling touched by that
simple prayer for me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Hear me?" she said. "Ah no, my Damoiselle,
I cannot expect God Almighty to hear me. But
He will hear the blessed Christ. He always hears
Him. And He will ask for me what I really need,
which is far better than hearing me. Because, my
Damoiselle sees, I make so many blunders; but He
makes none."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"What blunders didst thou make just now, Margot?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! Do I know, I? When He translated it into
the holy language of Heaven, the blessed Christ
would put them all right. Maybe, where I said,
'Be quick,' He would say, 'Be slow.'"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am sure that would be a blunder!" said I bitterly.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha! Does it not seem so, to my Damoiselle
and her servant? But the good God knows. If
my Damoiselle would only trust Him!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"'Trust'!" cried I, thinking of Sybil. "Ah,
Margot, I have had enough of trusting. I feel as if I
could never trust man again—nor woman."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Only one Man," said Marguerite softly. "And
He died for us."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>After saying that, she went away and left me.
I lay still, her last words making a kind of refrain
in my head, mingling with the one thought that
seemed to fill every corner.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"He died for us!" Surely, then, He cannot hate
us. He is not trying to give us as much suffering
as we can bear?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I rose at last, and went to seek Guy. But I had
to search the house almost through for him. I
found him at length, in the base court, gazing
through one of the narrow windows through which
the archers shoot. The moment I saw his face, I
perceived that though we might be one in sorrow
we were emphatically two in our respective ways of
bearing it. The quiet, patient grief in that
faraway look which I saw in his eyes, was dictated
by a very different spirit from that which actuated
me. And he found it, too.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Not a word would he hear against Sybil. He
nearly maddened me by calmly assuming that her
sufferings were beyond ours, and entreating me not
to let any words of mine add to her burden. It
was so like Guy—always himself last! And when
I said passionately that God was cruel, cruel!—he
hushed me with the only flash of the old impetuosity
that I saw in him.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, Elaine, no! Let me never hear that again."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was silent, but the raging of the sea went on
within.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I think," said Guy quietly, "that it is either in
a great sorrow or a serious illness that a man really
sees himself as he is, if it please God to give him
leave. I have thought, until to-day, in a vague
way, that I loved God. I begin to wonder this
morning whether I ever did at all."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>His words struck cold on me. Guy no true
Christian!—my brave, generous, noble, unselfish Guy!
Then what was I likely to be?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Guy," I said,—"</span><em class="italics">will</em><span> she?" I could bear the
torture no longer. And I knew he would need no more.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I think so, Elaine," was his quiet answer. "I
hope so."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"'</span><em class="italics">Hope</em><span> so'!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It is her only chance for the kingdom. The
nobles are quite right, dear. I am a foreigner; I
am an adventurer; I am not a scion of any royal
house. It would very much consolidate her position
to get rid of me."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And canst thou speak so calmly? I want to
curse them all round, if I cannot consume them!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am past that, Elaine," said Guy in a low voice,
not quite so firmly as before. "Once, I did—— May
the good Lord pardon me! His thunders are
not for mortal hands. And I am thankful that it
is so."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I suppose nobody is wicked, except me," I said
bitterly. "Every body else seems to be so terribly
resigned, and so shockingly good, and so every thing
else that he ought to be: and—I will go, if thou
hast no objection, Guy. I shall be saying
something naughty, if I don't."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy put his arm round me, and kissed my forehead.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"My poor little Lynette!" he said. "We can
go home to Poitou, dear, and be once more all in all
to each other, as we used to be long ago.
Monseigneur will be glad to see us."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But I could not stand that. Partly Guy's dreadful
calm, and partly that allusion to the long ago
when we were so much to each other, broke me
down, and laying my head down upon Guy's arm, I
burst into a passionate flood of tears.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh, what good they did me! I could scarcely
have believed how much quieted and lightened I
should feel for them. Though there was no real
change, yet the most distressing part of the weight
seemed gone. I actually caught myself fancying
what Monseigneur would say to us when we came home.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy said he would go with me to my chamber.
I was glad that we met no one below. But as we
entered the corridor at the head of the stairs, little
Agnes came running to us, holding up for
admiration a string of small blue beads.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"See, Baba!—See, Tan'!—Good!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>These are her names for Guy and me. Every
thing satisfactory is "good" with Agnes—it is her
expressive word, which includes beautiful, amiable,
precious, and all other varieties. I felt as if my
heart were too sore to notice her, and I saw a spasm
of pain cross Guy's face. But he lifted the child in
his arms, kissed her, and admired her treasure to her
baby heart's content. If I were but half as selfless
as he!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And who gave thee this, little one?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Amma. Good!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was the child's name for her mother. Ah, little
Agnes, I cannot agree with thee! "Amma" and
"good" must no longer go into one sentence. How
could she play, to-day, with Guy's children?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Yet I suppose children must be fed, and cared for,
and trained, and amused,—even though their elders'
hearts are breaking.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh, if I might lie down somewhere, and sleep,
and awake eighteen years ago, when I was a little
sorrowless child like Agnes!</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The coronation is fixed for Holy Cross Day.
And Lady Sybil has undertaken, as soon as she is
crowned, to select her future husband. One
condition she has insisted on herself. Every noble, on
the coronation day, is to take a solemn oath that he
will be satisfied with and abide by her decision, and
will serve the King of her choice for ever. This
seems to me a very wise and politic move, as it will
prevent any future disputes. Every body appears to
have no doubt on whom her choice will fall. All
expect the Count of Tripoli.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy has requested permission to retire to Ascalon;
and she has accorded it, but with the express
stipulation that he is to be in his place, with the rest
of her peers, at the coronation. It does seem to me
a piece of needless cruelty. Surely she might have
spared him this!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I also have asked permission to retire from Court.
Of course I go with Guy. Whoever forsakes him,
the little sister shall be true.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>For about the first time in my life, I am
thoroughly pleased with Amaury. He is nearly as
angry as I am—which is saying a great deal. And
he is the only person in whose presence I dare
relieve my feelings by saying what I think of Sybil,
for Guy will not hear a word.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Eschine has the most extraordinary idea. She
thinks that Sybil's heart is true, and that only her
head is wrong. It is all nonsense! Heart and head
go together.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The worst item of the agony is over—the divorce.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The ceremony was short enough. A speech—from
Count Raymond—stating to the public the necessities
of the case; a declaration from both parties that they
acted of their own free will; a solemn sentence from
the holy Patriarch:—and all was over, and Guy and
Sybil were both free to wed again.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I did think Sybil would have fainted before she
could get through the few words she had to speak.
But Guy was as calm and quiet as if he were making
some knightly speech. I cannot understand him.
It seems so unnatural for Guy.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I expressed some surprise afterwards.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Lynette! how could I make it harder for her!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>That was his answer. It was all for her. He
seems to think himself not worth considering.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>We leave for Ascalon very early to-morrow; and
as this was my last night, I went to Lady Judith's
cell to say farewell to her. On my way I met
Count Raymond, returning from an audience of
Lady Sybil, with triumph flashing in his eyes as he
met mine. He evidently agrees with the multitude
that he has a good chance of the crown. My heart
swelled against him, but I managed to return his
bow with courtesy, and passing on, tapped at Lady
Judith's door.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Helena, dear child!—Come in," she said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am come to bid you good-bye, holy Mother."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith silently motioned me to a seat on her
bed, and sat down beside me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is it quite as dark, my child?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes, quite!" I said, sighing.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Poor child! I would give much to be able to
comfort thee. But, please God, thou wilt be
comforted one day."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The day seems a long way off, holy Mother."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"It seemed a long way off, dear, to the holy
Jacob, the very day before the waggons arrived to
carry him down to his son Joseph. Yet it was very
near, Helena."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I listened with respect, of course: but I could not
see what that had to do with me. The waggons
were not coming for me—that one thing was certain.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Wilt thou be here for the coronation, my child?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I shall be where Guy is," I said shortly. "But—O
holy Mother, she might have spared him that!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith's look was very pitiful. Yet she
said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Perhaps not, my child."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Why, of course she might, if she would. What
was to hinder her? But I did not say so, for it
would have been discourteous.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Even between me and my dear old Lady Judith
there seemed a miserable constraint. Was it any
marvel? I rose to go. Almost noiselessly the door
opened, and before I could exclaim or escape, Sybil
stood before me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"And wert thou going without any
farewell—me,—little sister, Helena?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I stood up, frozen into stone.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I ask your Grace's pardon. We are not sisters </span><em class="italics">now</em><span>."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She turned aside, and covered her face with her
hands.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"O Lynette! thou makest it so hard, so hard!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"So hard?" said I coldly. "I hope I do. If your
heart had not been harder than the nether millstone,
Lady Sybil, you would never, never have required
our presence at your coronation. God give you what
you deserve!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"That is a terrible prayer, in general," she said,
turning and meeting my eyes. "And yet, Lynette,
in this one thing, I dare to echo it. Ay, God
render unto me what I deserve!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>How could she? Oh, how could she?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith kissed me, and I went away. I
believe Sybil would have kissed me too, but I would
not have it from her.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was easy, after that, to say farewell to the
rest.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I wish I were going too!" growled Amaury.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then why does he not? He might if he chose.
Just like Amaury!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Farewell, dear," said Eschine. "I shall miss
thee, Elaine."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>—And nobody else. Yes, I know that.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>So we go forth. Driven out of our Paradise, like
Adam and Eva. But the flaming sword is held by
no angel of God.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I always thought it such a dreadful thing, that our
first parents should be driven out of Paradise. Why
could not God have let them stay? It was not as if
He had wanted it for the angels. If He had meant
to use it for any thing, it would be on the earth now.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I cannot understand! Oh, why, why, </span><em class="italics">why</em><span> are all
these terrible things?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I cannot understand either," says old Marguerite.
"But I can trust the good God, and I can wait till
He tells me. I am happier than my Damoiselle,—always
wanting to know."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well, I see that I marvel if there is any maiden
upon earth much more miserable than I am. Last
night, only, I caught myself wishing—honestly
wishing—that I could change with Marguerite, old and
poor as she is. It must be such a comfort to think
of God as she does. It seems to answer for every
thing.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The sultry quiet here is something almost unendurable
to me. There is nothing in the world to see
or hear but the water-carriers crying "The gift of
God!" and strings of camels passing through the
gateway, and women washing or grinding corn in the
courts. And there is nothing to do but wait and
bear, and prepare, after a rather sluggish fashion, for
our return home when the coronation is over. Here,
again, old Marguerite is better off than I am, for she
has constantly things which she must do.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I do not think it likely that Amaury will come
with us. Things never take hold of him long. If
he be furiously exasperated on Monday, he is
calmly disgusted on Tuesday, supremely content
on Wednesday, and by Thursday has forgotten that
he was ever otherwise. And he seems disposed to
make his home here.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>To me, it looks as though my life divided itself
naturally into two portions, and the four years I
have passed here were the larger half of it. I seem
to have been a woman only since I came here.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Three months to wait!—and all the time we are
waiting for a dreadful ordeal, which we know must
come. Why does Lady Sybil give us this suffering?
And far more, why, why does the good God give it
to us?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>If I could only understand, I could bear it better.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ha!" says Marguerite, with a rather pitying
smile. "If my Damoiselle could but know every
thing, she would be content not to know more!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Well! I suppose I am unreasonable. Yet it will
be such a relief when the worst is over. But how
can I wish the worst to come?</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="sybil-s-choice"><span class="bold large">CHAPTER XIV.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><em class="bold italics medium">SYBIL'S CHOICE</em><span class="bold medium">.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<!-- -->
<blockquote>
<div>
<div class="line-block outermost">
<div class="line"><span>"'Gifts!' cried the friend. He took: and, holding it</span></div>
<div class="line"><span>High towards the heavens, as though to meet his star,</span></div>
<div class="line"><span>Exclaimed,—'This, too, I owe to thee, Giafàr!'"</span></div>
<div class="inner line-block">
<div class="line"><span>LEIGH HUNT.</span></div>
</div></div>
</div>
</blockquote>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>It came at last—neither sooner for my dreading it,
nor later for my wishing it—Holy Cross Day, the
coronation morning.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Guy and I reached the Holy City the night
before, and took up our quarters with the holy
Patriarch and his Lady Irene. We were just
opposite the Palace. We could see lights flashing
through the loop-holes, and now and then a shadow
pass behind them. It was hard to know that that
house held all that we loved, and we were the only
ones that dared not enter it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The Patriarch was most disagreeably loquacious.
He told us every thing. He might have been
cooking the banquet and broidering the robes, for
all the minute details he seemed to know. The
Queen, he told us, was to be arrayed in golden
baudekyn, and the Lady Isabel in rose and silver.
Both the Princesses would be present, attired in
gold and blue. Poor little Agnes and Helena!
How little they would understand of their mother's
actions!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>As little, perhaps, as any of us could understand
of God's dealings in this matter!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The officers of state were to surround the throne,
which was to be placed on the highest step of the
choir; the nobles of the Council were to stand, in
order according to the date of their creation, round
the nave below.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Irene was as silent as her lord was talkative.
But at night, when she brought me up to the
chamber she had prepared for me, she told me the
one thing I did care to know. A place had been
specially reserved for me, in the nave, immediately
behind Guy; and the Lady Irene's own place was
next to me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I am obliged to the Master of the Ceremonies,"
said I: for that was just where I wished to be.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nay," quietly said Lady Irene, as she took up
her lamp; "the Damoiselle is obliged to the Lady
Sybil."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Had Sybil thought of my fancy? What a
strange compound she was!—attending to one's
insignificant likings, yet crushing one's very heart
to dust!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I did not sleep till very late, and I was aroused
in the early morning by a flourish of trumpets,
announcing that the grand day had dawned. I
dressed myself, putting off my mourning for a suit
of leaf-green baudekyn, for I knew that Guy would
not be pleased if I wore any thing sombre, though it
would have suited my feelings well enough. A
golden under-tunic and kerchief, with my best
coronet, were the remainder of my attire. I found
Guy himself flashing in golden armour,[#] and wearing
his beautiful embroidered surcoat, which Sybil
herself wrought for him, with the arms of Lusignan.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] This phrase was used of steel armour ornamented
with gold.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>How could she bear to see that existing token of
her own dead love? The surcoat had worn better
than the heart.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We took our appointed places—Lady Irene, Guy,
and I,—and watched the nobles arrive,—now an odd
one, now half-a-dozen together. The Patriarch of
course left us, as he was to officiate.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>He told us last night that eighty out of every
hundred felt no doubt at all that the Count of
Tripoli would be the future King. (That Patriarch
is the queerest mortal. It never seemed to enter his
head that such information would not be highly
entertaining to Guy and me.)</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Now was the time to discern our enemies from
our friends. Those who did notice us risked Court
favour. But Messire de Montluc came all the way
from the choir to salute us; and I felt a throb of
gratitude to him in my heart. The Count of Edessa
was not able to see us, and Count Raymond—O
serpent, demon that he is!—looked straight at us, as
if he had never met us before.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was an additional pang, that the order of
precedence placed Count Raymond the very next
to Guy. I sincerely wished him at the other end of
the nave, though it would have placed him close to
the throne.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And now the important persons began to arrive.
Lady Judith, in the quiet brown habit of her Order,
stopped and scanned the groups all round, till her
eyes reached us, and then she gave us a full smile,
so rich in love and peace, that my heart throbbed
with sympathy, and yet ached with envy.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then came a lovely vision of rich rose and gleaming
silver, which did </span><em class="italics">not</em><span> look for us, and I felt that
was Lady Isabel. And then two sweet little fairy
forms in blue and gold, and I saw Guy crush his
under-lip as his eyes fell upon his children.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Last came the Queen that was to be—a glorious
ray of gold, four pages bearing her train, and her
long fair hair, no less golden than her robes,
streaming down them to her feet. She took her seat by
Lady Isabel, on the velvet settle near the throne.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then the Patriarch came forward into the midst
of the church, to a faldstool set there: and
announced in loud tones, that all the nobles of the
Council of Sybil, shortly to be crowned Queen of
Jerusalem, should come forward in rotation to the
faldstool, and swear between his hands[#] to bear true
and faithful allegiance, as to his King, to that one of
them all whom it should please her to choose for
her lord.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] Homage was always performed in this manner,
the joined hands
of the inferior, or oath-taker,
being held between the hands of the
superior lord, or person who administered the oath.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>One by one, they came forward: but I saw only
two. Count Raymond knelt down with an air of
triumphant command, as though he felt himself
King already: Guy with an aspect of the most
perfect quietness, as if he were thinking how he
could spare Sybil.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>When all the nobles were sworn, the Patriarch
went back to the choir, and Sybil, rising, came and
stood just before the throne. The coronation
ceremony followed, but I was not sufficiently at ease to
enter into it. There were prayers in sonorous Greek,
and incense, and the holy mass, and I cannot
properly tell what else. The last item was the actual
setting of the crown—the crown of all the world—on
the head of Sybil of Anjou.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And then came a gentle rush of intense expectation,
as Sybil lifted the crown royal from her head,
and prepared to descend the steps of the throne.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Her choice was to be made now.</span></p>
<p class="pnext" id="id1"><span>Down the damask carpeting of the nave she
came, very, very slowly: carrying the crown in
both hands, the holy Patriarch following and
swinging the holy censer behind her. Her eyes
were cast down. It was evident that she knew
perfectly well where he stood who was to wear
that crown.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Slowly, slowly, all along the nave. Past one
eligible noble after another, face after face gathering
blankness as she went. At last she turned, ever
so little, to the right.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could bear no more. I covered my face with
my mantle. Let who would gaze on me—let who
would sneer! She was coming—no doubt any
longer now—straight towards Count Raymond of Tripoli.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And never—with the faint flush in her cheeks,
and the sweet, downcast eyes—had I seen her look
so beautiful. And all at once, athwart my anger,
my indignation, my sense of bitter wrong, came
one fervent gush of that old, deep love, which had
been mine for Sybil: and I felt as though I could
have laid down my life that hour to save, not Guy,
but her, from the dreadful consequences of her own
folly,—from that man who had crushed Guy's heart
as he might have crushed a moth.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then came a dead hush, in which a butterfly's
wing might almost have been heard to beat. Then,
a low murmur, half assent, half dissent. Then,
suddenly bursting forth, a cheer that went pealing
to the roof, and died away in reverberations along
the triforium. The choice was made.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And then—I had not dared to look up—I heard
Sybil's voice. She was close, close beside me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Sir Guy de Lusignan," she said, "I choose thee
as my lord, and as Lord of the land of Jerusalem;
for—" and a slight quiver came into the triumphant,
ringing voice—"whom God hath joined together, let
not man put asunder!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then I looked up, and saw on my Guy's head
the crown of the world, and in Sybil's dear eyes the
tender, passionate love-light which she had locked
out of them for months for love's own sake, and I
knew her at last for the queen of women that
she is.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And then——I heard somebody speak my name,
and felt Lady Irene's arms close round me, and
darkness came upon me, and I knew no more.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>When I came to myself, I was lying in my own
old chamber in the Palace, and beside me were old
Marguerite fanning me with a handkerchief, and
Lady Judith bending over me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Helena, darling,—all is well!" she said.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Is all well?" I said, sadly, when I could speak.
"It is well with Guy, and therefore all else matters
little. But I wonder if I shall ever be forgiven?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"By whom?" asked Lady Judith.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"God and Sybil," I answered in a low voice.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ask them both," she said softly. "Sybil is
coming to thee, as soon as ever the banquet is over.
And there is no need to wait to ask God."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Did you guess, holy Mother, how it would end?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, Helena," she answered with a smile. "I knew."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"All along?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Yes, from the first."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I lay still and thought.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou marvel why I did not tell thee, dear,
and perhaps think it cruel? Ask Sybil why she
made me her sole confidante. I think thou wilt be
satisfied when thou hast heard her reason. But
though I did not guess Sybil's purpose,—" and she
turned with a smile to Marguerite,—"here, I fancy,
is one who did."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Ay, very soon," said Margot quietly: "but not
quite at first, Lady."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Thou wicked old Marguerite!" cried I. "And
never to tell me!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Suppose I had been mistaken," she replied.
"Would my Damoiselle have thanked me for telling
her then?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I felt quite sufficiently restored to go down to
the bower, though not able to bear the banquet.
So Lady Judith and I went down. She told me
all that had taken place after I fainted: how Messire
de Montluc and Lady Irene had taken care of me;
that the Patriarch had immediately bestowed the
nuptial benediction upon Sybil and Guy, and had
then anointed the King—(the King!)—that the
Knights Templars had escorted the King and
Queen to the banquet; and that after the banquet,
homage was to be done by all the nobles. Guy and
Sybil, therefore, were likely to be detained late.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Suddenly something climbed up on the settle,
and I felt myself seized round the neck, and
tumultuously caressed.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Tantine! Tantine!—Come—good! Baba and
Tantine—</span><em class="italics">both</em><span> come. Good!—Oh, good!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Of course I knew who that was, and alternated
between returning the warm kisses, and entreating
Agnes not to murder me by suffocation.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then came a much calmer kiss on my brow, and
I looked up at Eschine.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And then strolled in Messire Amaury, with his
hands in the pockets of his haut-de chausses, talking
to Messire de Montluc.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But the strangest thing, you know"—that
sagacious youth was observing—"the strangest thing—O
Elaine, is that thee!—the strangest thing is that
a mere simple, ignorant woman could have formed
and carried out such a project. Surely some man
must have given her the idea! I can hardly—Oh,
</span><em class="italics">pure foy</em><span>!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The last exclamation was due to a smart and
sudden application of my right hand to the left ear
of my respected brother. Messire de Montluc was
convulsed with laughter.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Well done, Damoiselle Elaine! You regard the
honour of your sex."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"The next time thou speakest contemptuously of
women," said I, "look first whether any overhear
thee."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Trust me, I will make sure of my sister Elaine,"
said Amaury, still rubbing his ear. "On my word,
Lynette, thou art a spitfire!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>One after another kept coming, and all expressing
pleasure in seeing me. I could not help wondering
whether all of them would have been quite so
pleased to see Elaine de Lusignan, if she had not
been the King's sister. Lady Judith and Eschine
would, I believed. Nor do I think it would have
made the least difference to Agnes. Considerations
of that kind do not begin to affect us till we are
over three years old.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But time wore on, and Sybil was not released
from her regal duties; and the strain which both
body and mind had had to sustain told upon me,
and I began to feel very tired. Lady Judith
noticed it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dear Helena," she said, "do put that white face
to bed. Sybil will come to thee."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"I have no right to ask it of her," I said huskily.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dost thou think she will wait till thou hast?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I was beginning to remonstrate that it would not
be respectful, when Lady Judith put her arm round
me, and said laughingly—"Sir Amaury, help me to
carry this wilful child to bed."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Fair Mother, I dare not for all the gold in
Palestine," said my slanderous brother. "My ear
has not done stinging yet."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Am I wilful?" said I. "Well, then I will do
as I am told.—As to thee, Amaury, thou hast just
thy desert."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Then I am a very ill-deserving man," responded he.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith and Eschine both came with me to
my chamber, and the latter helped me to undress.
I had but just doffed my super-tunic, however, when
a slight sound made me turn round towards the
door, and I saw Sybil,—Sybil, still in her
coronation robes, coming towards me with both hands
held out, as she had done that last sad time we
met. I threw myself on the ground before her, and
tried to kiss the hem of her golden robe. But she
would not let me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, no, my darling, no!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And she stooped and drew me into her arms,
and kissed me as if we had never disagreed,—as
if I had never uttered one of those bitter
words which it now made my cheeks burn even to
remember.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I could only sob out,—"Forgive me!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Dear little sister, forgive thee for loving Guy?"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"No, no!" I said, "but for not loving—for
misunderstanding, and slandering, and tormenting
thee!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Nay, dearest Helena!" she said, at once
tenderly and playfully,—"Thou didst not slander me.
It was that other Sybil with whom thou wert so
angry,—the Sybil who was not true to her lord,
and was about to forsake him. And I am sure she
deserved every word. But that was not I, Helena."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"But how my words must have tortured thee!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Not in one light, dear. It was a rich ray of
hope and comfort, to know, through all my pain,
how true the dear little sister was to Guy,—what
a comfort she was likely to be to him,—that
whoever forsook him, his Lynette would never do it.
Now finish thine undressing. There is one other
thing I want to say to thee, but let me see thee
lying at rest first."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>She sat down on the settle, just as she was, while
Bertrade finished undressing me. Then they all
said "Good night," and left me alone with Sybil.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Helena, darling!" she said, as she sat beside
me, my hand clasped in hers,—"this one thing I
wish thee to know. I could not spare thee this
pain. If the faintest idea of my project had ever
occurred to Count Raymond,—though it had been
but the shadow of a shade,—it would have been
fatal. Had he guessed it, I could never have
carried it out.[#] And he has eyes like a lynx, and
ears like a hare. And, little sister,—thy face talks!
Thou couldst not, try as thou wouldst, have kept
that knowledge out of thine eyes. And the Count
would have read it there, with as little trouble as
thou wouldst see a picture. The only chance,
therefore, to preserve my crown for my lord, and him
for me, was to leave him and thee in ignorance.
Trust me, it cost me more than it did you!"</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] The extraordinary item of this series of incidents
(which are historical) is,
that Count Raymond did not guess it.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Ah! had she not said that once before,—"Trust
me!" And I had not trusted her. Yet how well
she deserved it!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I hardly know what I sobbed out. I only know
that I was fully and undeservedly forgiven, that I
was loved through all my mistrust and unworthiness
and cruel anger,—and that Sybil knew how I
loved her.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then she left me to rest.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But as I lay there in the darkness, a thought
came to me, which seemed to light up the dark
wilderness of my life,—as though a lamp had been
suddenly flashed into a hidden chamber.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>What if it be just so with God?</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And it seemed to me as if He stood there, at
the summit of that ladder which Monseigneur Saint
Jacob was permitted to behold: and He looked
down on me, with a look tenderer and sweeter even
than Sybil's; and He held forth His hands to me,
as she had done, but in these there were the prints
of the cruel nails,—and He said—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Elaine, I could not spare thee this pain. If I
had done, in the end it would have been worse for
thee. Look upon My hands and My feet, and see
if I spared Myself, and, remembering that this was
for thy sake, say whether, if it had been possible, I
would not have spared thee!"</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I cannot tell whether I was dreaming or awake.
But I crept to the foot of the ladder, and I said to
Him who stood above it—</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Fair Father, Jesu Christ, I put myself in Thy
mercy.[#] I see now that I was foolish and ignorant.
It was not that Thou wert cruel. It was not that
Thou didst not care. Thou dost care. At every
pang that rent my heart, Thine heart was touched
too. Forgive me, for Sybil has done, and I have
sinned more against Thee than against her. Teach
me in future to give up my will, and to wish only to
do Thine."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span class="small">[#] A rebel, who returned to his allegiance unconditionally,
was said to "put himself in the King's mercy."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>I am afraid it was a very poor prayer. There was
no Angelus nor Confiteor—not even an Ave in it.
Yet was it all a dream, that a voice said to me,
"Thy sins are forgiven thee: go in peace"? And I
sank into dreamless sleep the next instant.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>It is all settled now. Next week, I shall be
professed of Lady Judith's Order,—an Order which will
just suit my wants, since the nuns have no abbess
over them, are bound only by terminable vows, and
(with assent of the community) may dwell where
they think fit, even in their own homes if need be.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lady Judith thinks that she can easily obtain
leave for me to dwell with Monseigneur, as she will
kindly represent it to the Order that he is now an
old man, and has no wife nor unmarried daughter to
care for him but me.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I think he is my first duty now. And I know he
will be so glad, so glad!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It will be hard to part with Guy and Sybil. But
I think that is where the Lord is leading me,—home
to Lusignan; and I do wish to follow His leading,
not my own.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Old Marguerite startled me very much last night.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Damoiselle," she said, "the cross is shining out
at last."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Where, Margot?" said I, rather puzzled.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Where I have so longed to see it," she said, "on
my darling's brow. Ah, the good God has not
brought her through the fire for nothing! Where
there used to be pride and mirth in her eyes, there is
peace. He will let His old servant depart now, for
it was all she had to live for."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>But I can never, never do without her! Oh, I do
hope the good God will not take dear old
Marguerite. Why, I am only just beginning to
understand and value her. But I think I am learning,
very slowly,—Oh, I am so slow and stupid!—that
real happiness lies not in having my way, but in
being satisfied with His,—not in trying to make
myself happy, but in trying to please Him. I am
constantly fancying that I have so learned this lesson
that I shall never forget it again. And then, within
an hour, I find myself acting as though I had never
heard of it.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>And I see, too, what I never understood before.—that
it is only by taking our Lord's yoke upon us,
and becoming meek and lowly in heart, that we can
find rest to our souls. Eschine's deep humility is the
source of her calm endurance. Pride is not peace;
it is its antidote. In Christ we have peace,—first
through the purchase of His blood, and secondly, in
growing like Him, which is, to grow in love and
lowliness, and to lose ourselves in Him.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I think I never before saw the loveliness of
humility. And I am sure I never saw the fair beauty of
Eschine's character and life. Oh, how far she rises
above me! And to think that I once looked down
upon her—dismissed her with a careless word of
scorn, as having "nothing in her"—when the truth
was that I was too low down to see her in reality.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Oh, how much the good God has had, and will
have, to forgive and bear with me!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I am now only just beginning to understand Him.
But that is a lesson which I may go on learning and
enjoying for ever. And how happy it will be, if we
all gather together in His halls above,—Guy, and
Sybil, and me, and old Marguerite, and Lady Judith,
and Monseigneur, and Eschine, and the little
children, and all,—never again to hear Paynim cry nor
woman's wail,—safe for ever, in the banquet-hall of God.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>At home again at last!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>How strangely glad they all seem to see me! I
do not think I ever knew how they all loved me. I
have lived for myself, and a little for Guy. Now,
with His grace, I fain would live for God, and in Him
for every one.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We sat round the centre fire last night in the old
hall,—I close to Monseigneur, with his hand upon
my shoulder, now and then removed to stroke my
hair—and we had all so much to say that it made us
very silent. It was Alix who spoke first.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>"Elaine," she said, "I want to give a name to my
baby girl that shall mean 'truth' or 'fidelity.' And
I do not like any of the French names that have
those meanings; they are not pretty. Tell me the
words for them in the tongue of the Holy Land."</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>I did not answer that the Court language of
Jerusalem was the Langue d'Oc, and that Alix would
be no better off for knowing. A rush of feeling came
over me, and I let it dictate my reply. And that
was only—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="bold large">"Sybil."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst" id="historical-appendix"><span class="bold large">HISTORICAL APPENDIX.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="bold medium">I. GUY DE LUSIGNAN</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>The history of Guy and Sybil, after the story leaves them,
is a sad one. Raymond Count of Tripoli, who had fancied
himself sure of the crown matrimonial, never forgave either.
He immediately entered into a secret alliance with Saladin,
by which he promised to betray Guy into his hands in the
next battle. On the fourth of July, 1187, Tripoli, who was
standard-bearer, so behaved himself in battle that the King
was taken prisoner. Sybil, in conjunction with the Patriarch
Heraclius, held Jerusalem until the second of October,
when she gave up the city to Saladin on terms including
liberty of ransom to all who could afford it. The Queen
now retired to Ascalon, within whose fortified walls she and
her little daughters remained until 1189, when Guy's ransom
was effected on the hard terms that Sybil should capitulate
at Ascalon, that Guy should abdicate, and that he should
go beyond sea. Guy, who had been kept in chains a whole
year at Damascus, consulted the clergy as to the necessity
of keeping faith with Saladin. They were all of the
Roman, but unscriptural opinion, that no faith need be
kept with a Paynim. Instead of abdicating and going
abroad, Guy, with Sybil and the children, marched to Acre,
which he invested, with a hundred thousand men who had
flocked to his standard. The Queen and Princesses were
lodged at Turon, looking towards the sea. In 1190 King
Philippe of France arrived before Acre, and on June 10,
1191, King Richard Cœur-de-Lion; and at last, on July 12,
Saladin gave up the city to the allied forces. But the
pestilence had been very rife during the siege. Baldwin
Archbishop of Canterbury, and numbers of French and
English nobles, died in the camp: and among others
the hero-Queen, Sybil of Anjou, and her two fragile children.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Raymond of Tripoli was dead also. He died in his
sleep, unabsolved; and evidence of his having formally
apostatized to Mahometanism was found after his death.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>After thus taking "last leave of all he loved," Guy—brave,
rash, impetuous Guy—appears to have become
almost reckless. Of course, by right, Sybil was succeeded
by her sister Isabel; but Guy still clung to his title of
King, and the privileges appurtenant to it, and disputed
with Conrado of Monferrato, the husband of Isabel, the
right to the customs of the port of Acre. Conrado was
an extremely quarrelsome man, and Guy's opposition
seems to have been personally directed to him; for on
his death (which of course Guy and Cœur-de-Lion were
accused of forwarding) Guy readily acknowledged Isabel
and her third husband, on condition of receiving the
island of Cyprus as compensation for all his claims.
King Richard had sold Cyprus to the Templars, but he
coolly took it from them, and gave it to Guy, who, being
apparently more honest of the two, paid a hundred
thousand crowns to the Templars as compensation. This is
the last that we hear of Guy de Lusignan, except the
mere date of his death, which occurred, according to
different authorities, from one to four years after the
cession of Cyprus.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Few historical characters have had less justice done
them by modern writers, than Guy de Lusignan and
Sybil his wife. In the first place, Guy is accused of
having, in 1167-8, assassinated Patrick Earl of Salisbury,
in returning from a pilgrimage to Saint Iago de
Compostella. King Henry II., we are told, was greatly
enraged, and banished Guy from Poitou, whereupon he
assumed the cross, and set out for the Holy Land. Now
the truth is that in 1167-8, it is scarcely possible that
Guy could be above ten years old. Either it was another
Guy de Lusignan, or the outrage was committed by
persons of whom the child Guy was the nominal head.
But all the circumstances tend to show that Guy's arrival
in the Holy Land was little, if at all, before 1180, and
that at that time he was a very young man.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>We next find Guy accused of such boundless ambition,
that he not only induced King Baldwin IV. to put all the
affairs of the kingdom into his hands, but even to
promise him the succession after his death. But when
Baldwin had bestowed upon Guy his sister and heir
presumptive, Sybil, how could he either promise him the
succession or lawfully deprive him of it? The reversion
of the crown was hers. Baldwin did her a cruel injustice,
and committed an illegal act, when he passed her over,
and abdicated in favour of her infant son.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Then, on the death of Baldwin V., we are actually told
that Sybil, urged by her ambitious husband, </span><em class="italics">usurped</em><span> the
crown. Usurped it from whom? Surely not from her
own daughters!—surely not from her younger sister!
Matthew of Westminster distinctly remarks that "there
was none to succeed but his mother Sybilla." Sybil merely
took back her own property, of which she had been
unjustly deprived.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Again, with respect to her action at her coronation,
poor Sybil comes in again for her share of blame. She
had no business, we are assured, to choose Guy, who had
already proved himself an unsatisfactory governor; and in
the interest of the kingdom, she ought to have married
some one else. In other words, she ought to have
committed sin in the interest of her subjects!</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Lastly, a wholesale charge of poisoning is brought
against both Guy and Sybil. Probabilities are thrown
overboard. They are accused of poisoning young Baldwin
V.; and Guy is charged with the murder of his wife and
children, though their death entirely destroyed his claim
to the royal title. The truth is, that in the twelfth
century, any death not easily to be accounted for was always
set down to poison: and the nearest relatives, totally
irrespective of character, were always suspected of having
administered it. Men of Guy's disposition,—impulsive,
rash, and generous even to a fault, loving and
self-sacrificing,—are not usually in the habit of murdering those
they love best: and considered merely from a political
point of view, the simultaneous deaths of Sybil and her
children were the worst calamities which could have fallen
upon Guy.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="bold medium">II. THE ROYAL FAMILY OF JERUSALEM.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Melisende, Queen of Jerusalem, eldest of the four
daughters of Baldwin II., and Morsise of Armenia,
</span><em class="italics">succeeded</em><span> her father in 1131, and </span><em class="italics">died in</em><span> 1141 or
1144. She </span><em class="italics">married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>Foulques V., Count of Anjou; </span><em class="italics">married</em><span> 1128;
</span><em class="italics">died</em><span> at Acre, by accident, November, 1142.
[He had previously been married to
Ermengarde of Maine, by whom he had four
children,—Geoffrey Plantagenet; Hélie Count
of Maine; Sybil, Countess of Flanders; and
Alice, Crown Princess of England.]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">Issue of Queen Melisende</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>1. Baldwin III, </span><em class="italics">born</em><span> 1129, </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> Feb., 1162, without
issue. </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>Theodora Comnena, daughter of Isaac I., Emperor
of the East</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>2. Amaury I., </span><em class="italics">born</em><span> 1132-6; </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> July 11, 1173.
</span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>(A) Agnes de Courtenay, daughter of Josceline,
Count of Edessa: </span><em class="italics">divorced</em><span>.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>(B) MARIA COMNENA, daughter or niece of Manuel
I., Emperor of the East: living 1190. [Character imaginary.]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">Issue of Amaury I. By Agnes</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>1. BALDWIN IV., the Leper; </span><em class="italics">born</em><span> 1158; </span><em class="italics">abdicated</em><span> 1183;
</span><em class="italics">d.</em><span> March 16, 1185. Never married.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>2. SYBIL I., </span><em class="italics">crowned</em><span> Sept., 1186; </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> at Acre, during
the siege, 1190. [Character historical] </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<ol class="upperalpha simple">
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><span>Guglielmo, Marquis of Monferrato: </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> 1180.</span></p>
</li>
</ol>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span>(B) GUY DE LUSIGNAN: </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> 1183; </span><em class="italics">died</em><span>
September (Fabyan) 1193 (ib.) 1194 (Moreri,
Woodward and Coates Chron. Cycl.) 1195
(Roger de Hoveden) 1196 (Anderson).
[Character historical]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">By Maria</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>3. ISABEL I. [Character historical] </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>(A) HOMFROY DE TOURS: </span><em class="italics">mar. circ.</em><span> 1183; </span><em class="italics">divorced</em><span>
1190; </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> 1199. [The legality of the
divorce was very doubtful, and caused many
subsequent counter-claims to the throne.]</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>(B) Conrado, Marquis of Monferrato, Count of
Tyre: </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> 1190; </span><em class="italics">assassinated</em><span> at Tyre, Apr. 27, 1192.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>(C) Henri, Count of Champagne: </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> 1193,
</span><em class="italics">died</em><span> at Acre, by accident, 1196-7.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>(D) AMAURY DE LUSIGNAN, brother of Guy: </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span>
1197, </span><em class="italics">d.</em><span> 1205. [Character imaginary.]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">Issue of Sybil I. By Guglielmo</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>1. BALDWIN V., </span><em class="italics">born</em><span> 1180, </span><em class="italics">crowned</em><span> Nov. 20, 1183; </span><em class="italics">died</em><span>
at Acre, 1186. [Character imaginary.]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">By Guy</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>2, 3. DAUGHTERS, died with mother, during siege of
Acre, 1190. [Some writers ascribe four daughters to
Sybil.]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">Issue of Isabel I. By Conrado</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>1. Marie, or Violante, I. Married—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>Jean de Brienne, third son of Erard II. Count of
Brienne, and Agnes de Montbeliard; Emperor of
the East, 1233; </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> Mar. 21, 1237.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">By Henri</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>2. Alix I., </span><em class="italics">died cir.</em><span> 1246. Married—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>(A) HUGUES DE LUSIGNAN, son of Amaury de
Lusignan and Eschine d'Ibellin: </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> 1219.</span></p>
<ol class="upperalpha simple" start="2">
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><span>Bohemond IV., Prince of Antioch: </span><em class="italics">divorced</em><span>.</span></p>
</li>
</ol>
<ol class="upperalpha simple" start="3">
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><span>Raoul, Count of Soissons: </span><em class="italics">died circ.</em><span> 1246.</span></p>
</li>
</ol>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span>3. Philippa, </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> 1214, Erard de Brienne, Lord of
Rameru; living 1247.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">By Amaury</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>4. Sybil, </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> Leon I., King of Armenia.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>5. Robert, Abbot of St. Michael</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>6. Amaury, </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> young.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">Issue of Marie I</em><span>.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Violante, </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> at Brindisi, 1223-5, Friedrich II.,
Emperor of Germany: </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> 1228-9.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>From this marriage the Emperors of Germany and
Austria derive the empty title of Kings of Jerusalem.
They have no right to it, since the posterity of Violante
became extinct in the second generation. The Kings of
Italy, on the contrary, have a right to the title, being
descendants of Anna of Cyprus, the heir general of Alix I.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 3em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="bold medium">III. HOUSE OF LUSIGNAN.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>It will be perceived from the following table, that in the
story, the three Williams, sons of Count Geoffrey, have
been made into one; and that the sisters, Alix and Elaine,
are fictitious characters.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The House of Lusignan begins about A.D. 900, with
Hugues I., surnamed </span><em class="italics">Le Veneur</em><span>. Eighth in descent from
him we find—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>Hugues VIII., died 1164. </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>Bourgogne, daughter of Geoffroy de Rançon.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">Issue</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>1. Hugues IX, </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> 1206. </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>Mahaud, daughter of Wulgrain III., Count of Angoulême.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>2. GEOFFROY, COUNT DE LA MARCHE, living 1210.
[Character imaginary.] </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<ol class="upperalpha simple">
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><span>Eustacie de Chabot.</span></p>
</li>
</ol>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span>(B) Clémence, daughter of Hugues Viscount de
Châtelhérault. [Character imaginary.]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">Issue of Hugues IX. and Mahaud</em><span>:—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>Hugues X., le Brun: </span><em class="italics">killed</em><span> at Massoura, 1249. </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>Isabelle, Countess of Angoulême, and widow of
John King of England; </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> 1217-21; </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> 1246.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>[From this marriage sprang the House of
Valence, Earls of Pembroke, famous in
English history.]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">Issue of Count Geoffroy and Eustacie</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>1. GUILLAUME, surnamed </span><em class="italics">à la grande dent</em><span>, </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> issueless
before 1250. </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>UMBERGE, daughter of the Viscount de Limoges.
[Character imaginary.]</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>2. GUILLAUME, Lord of Mairevant. </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>[Unknown.]</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>3. GUILLAUME de Valence, </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> 1170.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>4. GUY, Count of Jaffa and Ascalon: </span><em class="italics">crowned</em><span> King of
Jerusalem, Sept. 1186; </span><em class="italics">died Sept.</em><span>, 1193-6. [See
the previous article.]</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>5. AMAURY, </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> 1205. </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>(A) ESCHINE, daughter of Beaudouin d'Ibellin, Lord
of Rames; </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> 1193. [Character imaginary.]</span></p>
<ol class="upperalpha simple" start="2">
<li><p class="first noindent pfirst"><span>ISABEL I., Queen of Jerusalem. [See last article.]</span></p>
</li>
</ol>
<p class="noindent pfirst"><span>6. RAOUL d'Issoudun, </span><em class="italics">d.</em><span> 1218-9. </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>, before Aug. 31, 1199.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>Alice, Countess of Eu: living Sept. 19, 1119.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">Issue of Guillaume Lord of Mairevant</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>1. VALENCE, </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> Hugues, Lord of Parthenay.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>2. Elise, or Aline, </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> Bartholomé, Lord de La Haye.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><em class="italics">Issue of Amaury and Eschine</em><span>:—</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 1em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>1. GUY, </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> young.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>2. Jean, </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> young.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>3. HUGUES, </span><em class="italics">died</em><span> 1219. </span><em class="italics">Married</em><span>—</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>Alix I., Queen of Jerusalem. [See last article]</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>4. Bourgogne, </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> Gaultier de Montbelliard.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>5. HÉLOÏSE, </span><em class="italics">mar.</em><span> (1) Eudes de Dampierre; (2) Rupin,
Prince of Antioch.</span></p>
<p class="noindent pnext"><span>[For issue of Amaury and Queen Isabel, see last article.]</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 3em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="bold medium">TITLES.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="pfirst"><span>Society was divided in the twelfth century into four
ranks only,—nobles, clergy, bourgeoisie, and villeins.
Two of these,—nobles and villeins—were kept as distinct
as caste ever kept classes in India, though of course with
some differences of detail. All titled persons, knights,
and landed proprietors, belonged to the nobility. The
clergy were recruited from nobility and bourgeoisie—rarely
from the villein class. The bourgeoisie were free
men, without land, and usually with some trade or
profession; and were despised by the nobles, as men who
had lifted themselves above their station, and presumed
to vie with their betters. The villeins were always serfs,
saleable with the land on which they lived, bound to the
service of its owner, disposable at his pleasure, and esteemed
by him very little superior to cattle. Education was
restricted to clergy and noble women, with a few exceptions
among the male nobility; but as a rule, a lay gentleman
who could read a book, or write anything beyond
his signature, was rarely to be seen.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>No kind of title was bestowed in addressing any but
nobles and clergy. The bourgeois was merely Richard
Haberdasher, John the Clerk, or William by the
Brook—(whence come Clark and Brook as surnames)—the
villein was barely Hodge or Robin, without any further
designation unless necessary, when the master's name was
added. Such a term as Ralph Walter-Servant (namely,
Ralph, servant of Walter) is not uncommon on mediæval
rolls.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The clergy, as is still the case in Romish countries,
were addressed as Father; and those who had not
graduated at the Universities were termed Sir, with the
surname—"Sir Green," or "Sir Dickson." It is doubtful,
however, whether this last item stretches so far back as the
twelfth century. "Dan," the epithet of Chaucer, certainly
does not.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>The names bestowed on the nobles consisted of three
for the men, and two for the women. (French, it must
be remembered, was the language of England as well as
of France at this time. Only villeins spoke English.) The
lowest epithet was "Sieur" (gentleman), which was
applied to untitled landed proprietors. The next, "Sire"
or "Messire" (Sir) was the title of the knights; and the
King was addressed as Sire only because he was the
chief knight in the realm. The highest, "Seigneur"
(Lord) was applied to royalty, peers, and all nobles in
authority, especially those possessing territorial power.
The ladies, married and single, were addressed as "Dame"
and "Damoiselle." The English version of the last title,
damsel, was used of the young nobility of both sexes.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>Among themselves, nobles addressed their relatives by
the title of relationship, with the epithet "bel"
prefixed—which, when English began to be spoken by the higher
classes, was translated "fair." "Fair Father," "Fair
Brother," sound very odd to modern ears: but for
centuries they were the usual appellations in a noble family,
both in England and in France. They were not, however,
used between husband and wife, who always ceremoniously
termed each other Monseigneur and Madame.</span></p>
<p class="pnext"><span>It was only natural—and is what we ourselves do to
this day—that our ancestors should address God in prayer
by those terms which in their eyes were the highest titles
of honour. In this light, though "Majesty" is peculiar
to Spain, yet "Seigneur," "Messire," and "Bel Père,"
obtained currency in most civilised countries. The first
we have retained: and though we have degraded "Lord"
into the title of our lesser nobility, we still use it as the
special epithet of Deity. It is only custom which has
made the other names sound strange to our ears. We
no longer prefix "fair" to "Father" when we address
the human relative; and it has also become unusual to
transfer it to the divine Father. "Sir God" would shock
us. But in our ancestors' eyes it was the most reverent
and honourable of all titles, which was the reason why
they chose it. Even so late as the fifteenth century, the
Maid of Orleans never spoke of God by any other term
than "Messire."</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span>THE END</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span>* * * * * * * *</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span class="bold large">Stories of English Life.</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><span class="bold medium">BY EMILY S. HOLT.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"></div>
<p class="literal-block"><br/>
<span>A.D. 597<br/>
<br/>
I. Imogen:<br/>
A TALE OF THE EARLY BRITISH CHURCH.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1066<br/>
<br/>
II. Behind the Veil:<br/>
A STORY OF THE NORMAN CONQUEST.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1159<br/>
<br/>
III. One Snowy Night;<br/>
OR, LONG AGO AT OXFORD.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1189<br/>
<br/>
IV. Lady Sybil's Choice:<br/>
A TALE OF THE CRUSADES.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1214<br/>
<br/>
V. Earl Hubert's Daughter;<br/>
OR, THE POLISHING OF THE PEARL.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1325<br/>
<br/>
VI. In all Time of our Tribulation:<br/>
THE STORY OF PIERS GAVESTONE.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1350<br/>
<br/>
VII. The White Lady of Hazelwood:<br/>
THE WARRIOR COUNTESS OF MONTFORT.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1352<br/>
<br/>
VIII. Countess Maud;<br/>
OR, THE CHANGES OF THE WORLD.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1360<br/>
<br/>
IX. In Convent Walls:<br/>
THE STORY OF THE DESPENSERS.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1377<br/>
<br/>
X. John De Wycliffe,<br/>
AND WHAT HE DID FOR ENGLAND.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1384<br/>
<br/>
XI. The Lord Mayor:<br/>
A TALK OF LONDON IN 1384.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1390<br/>
<br/>
XII. Under One Sceptre:<br/>
THE STORY OF THE LORD OF THE MARCHES<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1400<br/>
<br/>
XIII. The White Rose of Langley;<br/>
OR, THE STORY OF CONSTANCE LE DESPENSER.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1400<br/>
<br/>
XIV. Mistress Margery:<br/>
A TALE OF THE LOLLARDS.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1400<br/>
<br/>
XV. Margery's Son;<br/>
OR, UNTIL HE FIND IT.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1470<br/>
<br/>
XVI. Red and White;<br/>
OR, THE WARS OF THE ROSES.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1480<br/>
<br/>
XVII. The Tangled Web:<br/>
A TALE OF THE FIFTEENTH CENTURY.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1515<br/>
<br/>
XVIII. The Harvest of Yesterday:<br/>
A TALE OF THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1530<br/>
<br/>
XIX. Lettice Eden;<br/>
OR, THE LAMPS OF EARTH AND THE LIGHTS OF HEAVEN.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1535<br/>
<br/>
XX. Isoult Barry of Wynscote:<br/>
A TALE OF TUDOR TIMES.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1544<br/>
<br/>
XXI. Through the Storm;<br/>
OR, THE LORD'S PRISONERS.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1555<br/>
<br/>
XXII. Robin Tremayne:<br/>
A TALE OF THE MARIAN PERSECUTION.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1556<br/>
<br/>
XXIII. All's Well;<br/>
OR, ALICE'S VICTORY.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1556<br/>
<br/>
XXIV. The King's Daughters.<br/>
HOW TWO GIRLS KEPT THE FAITH.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1569<br/>
<br/>
XXV. Sister Rose;<br/>
OR, THE EVE OF ST. BARTHOLOMEW.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1579<br/>
<br/>
XXVI. Joyce Morrell's Harvest:<br/>
A STORY OF THE REIGN OF ELIZABETH.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1588<br/>
<br/>
XXVII. Clare Avery:<br/>
A STORY OF THE SPANISH ARMADA.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1605<br/>
<br/>
XXVIII. It Might Have Been:<br/>
THE STORY OF GUNPOWDER PLOT.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1635<br/>
<br/>
XXIX. Minster Lovel:<br/>
A STORY OF THE DAYS OF LAUD.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1662<br/>
<br/>
XXX. Wearyholme;<br/>
A STORY OF THE RESTORATION.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1712<br/>
<br/>
XXXI. The Maiden's Lodge;<br/>
OR, THE DAYS OF QUEEN ANNE.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1745<br/>
<br/>
XXXII. Out in the Forty-five;<br/>
OR, DUNCAN KEITH'S VOW.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1750<br/>
<br/>
XXXIII. Ashcliffe Hall:<br/>
A TALE OF THE LAST CENTURY.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
XXXIV. A.D. 1556<br/>
<br/>
For the Master's Sake;<br/>
OR, THE DAYS OF QUEEN MARY.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1345<br/>
<br/>
The Well in the Desert.<br/>
AN OLD LEGEND.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
XXXV. A.D. 1559<br/>
<br/>
All for the Best;<br/>
OR, BERNARD GILPIN'S MOTTO.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1560<br/>
<br/>
At the Grene Griffin:<br/>
A TALE OF THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
XXXVI. A.D. 1270<br/>
<br/>
Our Little Lady;<br/>
OR, SIX HUNDRED YEARS AGO<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1652<br/>
<br/>
Gold that Glitters;<br/>
OR, THE MISTAKES OF JENNY LAVENDER.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
XXXVII. A.D. 1290<br/>
<br/>
A Forgotten Hero:<br/>
THE STORY OF ROGER DE MORTIMER.<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1266<br/>
<br/>
Princess Adelaide:<br/>
A STORY OF THE SIEGE OF KENILWORTH.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
XXXVIII. 1ST CENTURY.<br/>
<br/>
The Slave Girl of Pompeii.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
2ND CENTURY.<br/>
<br/>
The Way of the Cross.<br/>
TALES OF THE EARLY CHURCH<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 870 to 1580<br/>
<br/>
XXXIX. Lights in the Darkness:<br/>
BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCHES.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
A.D. 1873<br/>
<br/>
XL. Verena.<br/>
SAFE PATHS AND SLIPPERY BYE-WAYS.<br/>
A Story of To-day.</span><br/></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 3em"></div>
<p class="center pfirst"><span>LONDON: JOHN F. SHAW AND CO.,</span></p>
<p class="center pnext"><span>48 PATERNOSTER ROW.</span></p>
<div class="vspace" style="height: 6em"></div>
<!-- -*- encoding: utf-8 -*- -->
<div class="backmatter"></div>
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />